#the way edge called them all together
Explore tagged Tumblr posts
Text
đ„șđ„Ž
#them. they are a FAMILY#for a second i thought edge grabbed Christian hand and actually yeah that is what happened i saw it#the way they were fighting before this#the way edge called them all together#the WAYYYY gangrel let them go ahead of him#AHHHHHHHH#wrestling#gangrel#christian cage#the brood#jinouchi.txt#adam edge copeland
12 notes
·
View notes
Note
In your fic tbasawas was there anything specific that inspired you to do your specific stories and or ships?
Yes and noâ
For the story itself:
Originally, I only had concepts for Aeiisy, a dark fic with a skeleton reader who is constantly having a Bad Time. But, as with most of my ideas, it got split into two different paths. (This is how I end up with most of my fic ideas btw) You might see a few similarities, or even direct reflections between a few of my works, and thatâs because they are all directly or indirectly formed from a few of the same ideas, split into separate paths.
Like an au I guess???
Tbasawas was made as a direct counter to Aeiisy, so I wouldnât pass away from angst and could have something sweet a fluffy to write whenever I got burnt out. (Ignoring the amount of angst that ended up in Tbasawas anyway⊠and the fluff that got put into AeiisyâŠ. Donât look at me!!)
So Tbasawas was inspired by Aeiisy, and Aeiisy was inspired by the need for a skele reader, Monster Frisk, and an apocalypse fic. Not sure how any of that connects, but thatâs how it went down.
Tbasawas is a soft apocalypse, if thatâs even a thing. Their changes arenât gory and the world isnât riddled with war and violence. Just people treated like lost puppies in a cozy adoption center waiting for their âforever homeâ. For the most part.
I take a lot of inspiration directly from animal adoption processes. The whole shebang. Paperwork, wait time, vetting, inspections, background checks, introductions, acclimationâ Hell, even the Assigned Nurse can be compared to a Foster. The Mimic Monitors are essentially juiced up microchips.
Iâm pretty sure I even used a templateïżŒ for the adoption of a dog from a serious breeder for the letter that Abbee gives Nerma to explain to process. And the email Edge receives ïżŒ in chapter one.
Thereâs a lot of themes in Tbasawas going on. Another one is the grieving process, as hinted at in the title of the first chapter. Arc one: Shock.
Iâm using this version of the grieving process in particular:
Iâm not sure how strictly Iâll follow it, but itâs definitely there in the background, at the very least.
As for inspiration for the relationships:
Itâs all kinda based around these themes and how I think the characters would be changed by them.
Iâve changed these characters a lot. Maybe not much physically for most,(that you can see.. wink wonk) but Iâve taken a lot of liberty with their stories and backgrounds. And in the tags for Tbasawas, this universe is listed under post neutral route⊠not pacifist. Do with that information what you will.
Based on these changes, I think about how they might act. What makes the most sense. What they feel, what kind of person would they feel most comfortable around and what kind would they hate? Do they have insecurities? Are there any fears that they might be judged? Would that stop them from getting close to specific skeletons in the pack? *cough* Sparrow *cough*
Are they jealous or possessive? Holding on to the one good thing thatâs happened to them and waiting for the other show to drop?? Even if it hinders the others ability to seek out relationships with others of the pack??? *cough* Red *cough*
I kinda just zone out and smash dolls together in my mind until I get something I like. Not all that cool of a process, but itâs what works for me.
Speaking of! Letâs use Red and Sparrow as an example!!!
*grabs my mental dolls of Red and Sparrow in my hands and smacks them together*
*loud incorrect buzzer sound*
Yep. Knew that would happen. Seeâ Red is chill around the pack, but thereâs not a lot of⊠feelings??? He has this disconnect inside him, whether from his LV, his trauma, or if thatâs simply just how he handles his emotions, Iâm not sure.
Thereâs this wall that he has up. He cares for the pack, and for his brother, of course he does! Heâd kill for them. That was never in question. Heâs just⊠distant. The only one who can really, really get close is Comet. And thatâs mainly because theyâre so similar it hurts. Theyâre in the same, sinking boat. Drifting out in the middle of the ocean as they keep hammering in nails in hopes they wonât drown.
Red is heavily complex, and no one knows just how to solve him and tell him to stop making so many damn holes in his boat before itâs unrepairable.
Heâs smoke and mirrors with knives that will cut you if you take a wrong step.
Sparrow, is also withdrawn. But for very different reasons.
Heâs not shy, per sayâ but heâs very conscious how he looks and how heâs perceived. He knows that heâs not as handsome as he once was (lies), he knows that he looks frightening, even to other Monsters.
His self esteem is very low, itâs been getting better thanks to his pack, but itâs still not great. He hides a lot of things about himself, whether out of shame or for the perceived benefit of the other person is a 50/50 at any given moment.
His status as a sigma doesnât help. There are already enough stigmas about people like him and Star, if Sparrow canât do whatâs expected of himâ if he falls into stereotypesâ
âŠhe doesnât like to think about it.
Heâs not as able bodied anymore, and his senses are both dulled and heightened to uncomfortable degrees. He needs to be able to trust the people around him.ïżŒ He needs to know that they wonât think lower of him for his weakness. He needs to know that he can depend on them and they wonât just up and leave.
Red has given no indication that he is capable of providing any of those assurancesïżŒ. He has in fact proven quite the opposite.
At this point in time, Red and Sparrow could never be in a relationship. Sparrow would likely end up cut on Redâs knives and shattered glass, and Red would keep hammering more fucking nails into his boat. Unaware that itâs the very thing that keeps brining in more water.
Augh. So long story short: insanity.
The idea for the story popped in my head and then I stared at characters until the imploded in my brain like a super nova and then they kept forming fun new galaxies for me to explore.
I guess itâs my characters that give me inspiration. I just wanna slap my dolls together and see wtf happens, I have no idea where Iâm going and Iâm equally as surprised as you are at every chapterđżđżđż
I just wanna see Edge be soft and have his little found family, and to feel like heâs allowed to exist in the world despite his sins.
I wanna see Grim be an absolute menace and Get Bitches, because he loves his idiots and just wants to live life at his laziestïżŒ.
I wanna see Bear put a ring on as many hoes as he likes and get to be happy and smug and purr as he crushes them (lovingly) in his nest.
I wanna see Stretch be soft and fuss about his mates and then punish them for their stupidity with various ïżŒpranks.
I wanna see Star huff and lovingly bully his mates into being kind to them selves, forcing them to take it easy or face the wrath of Self Care days.
I wanna see Comet get yoinked out of his tiny shell and actually mean it when he smiles his little bastard smiles, and to be able to reach out and form other relationships within the pack.
I wanna see Black get his ass Wooed and his icy rain bloom into spring showers because he feels loved and able to be soft and love in turn.
I wanna see Blue live his life to the fullest and prioritize his own feelings sometimes and remember that itâs okay to want things.
I wanna see Sparrow have each and every one of his boo boos kissed and told that heâs handsome and I want him to accept it and be confident.
And I wanna see Red get a happy ending. I want to see his sharp edges, both the ones facing inside and out, to get smoothed out. I wanna see this bastard get soft and mushy. Iâm gonna turn his ass into a grumpy marshmallow just you wait.
And of course, I want to see Nerma be the spark that gets this thing moving.
Iâm just a simpâŠ. That is all đ
#rabid rambles#Iâm teally putting the rabid into rambling#undertale#sans#papyrus#augh#answered asks#sipping milk#I can not stay on topic for the life of me#I didnât have any ideas for specific ships when I first started#I just became progressively more and more Deranged#I think my favorites would have to be Bear X Black. Red X Comet. and Grim X literally every one#I just Need them all to kiss okay Iâm normal I swear#I donât know whit inspires besides sheer Brain Rot#tbasawas#maybe I should come up with ship names lmao#Edge and Blue are also very sweet together#I need them all to be happy otherwise I will Die#I have SO many plot points that Iâm excited to get to#so much foreshadowing that I want to pay off#auuuggooowwwwhhhhhuuuueeee#somebody put me Down before I spread my disease#as always!! thanks for the ask and always feel free to send more whenever you have a question :3 as you can see I am very ill and will go#sicko mode when given the chance#call me the yappster grandmaster the way I let loose
6 notes
·
View notes
Text
i just had a thought so
basically
i'm listening to bnha ost albums and getting emotional over them and thinking abt how much i fuckin love yuki hayashi's soundtracks and how they're why i can never really hate the anime at all even when i see people complain abt things with how it was adaptedâand yeah i'll acknowledge when things are cut and be annoyed too but. to say i hate the anime over it?? no i couldn't
and anyway it made me think of how i used to listen to the sao and naruto osts on youtube and sometimes i'd read the comments and it was usually a bunch of dudebros in their late teens-early 30s roughly (iirc lol) talking abt how the soundtracks were so good and how they brought up nostalgia from when they were 7, 9, 12, 13, etc etc. and i just thought. like damn
so many people on my side of fandom spaces may hate on dudebros in their fandoms but like. many of them are just here enjoying the story yk??? and like. we're such different people and yet we love the same story and (in my case example specifically) all appreciating the music from that same show and reminiscing the same moments and well. maybe we're not so different after all yk and isn't that beautiful???
me personally it makes me want to cry a little
bc we're such different people but at the end of the day we're also two people whose hearts were both touched by the same story, two people who love the same storyâand through that, in that wayâeven though we're so different at a face levelâcan't we still understand each other??? can't we still find a way to reach each others hearts???
#augh#orv-coded thoughts lol#orv permeates everything for me so. well. yeah#bnha#naruto#sao#sword art online#rq rambles#bnha ost#yuki hayashi#anime#anime ost#orv-esque#fandom#on fandom#if u embrace ur fandom dudebros some of them will embrace u back <3#one of my middle school friends who i'd still consider a friend even if we're not as close is your basic straight guy anime watcher#and he's rly chill and fun and cool to hang out with#grahhhh ik people are referring to a certain category of dudebros when they talk abt âdudebrosâ in fandom#and i've used the term in that way sometimes too#but damn. we're really all just people#and if we're hostile to them how will they engage with fandom outside of spaces with other dudebros??#like. idk we push them into these spaces together where they're just gonna learn all the bs the shitty kind of dudebros (Dudebrosâąïž) do/say#ngl i think this especially bad in the bnha fandom#bc some guy will draw some cute izuocha art of them hugging or smth and then he gets attacked and called homophobic which is just. ?????#raghhhhh that kind of shit actually makes me so mad lol#bc wow y'all wtaf let people ship who they want to ship???#anyway i feel this edging towards rant territory and these tags are already way too long so ima cut myself off here lol
2 notes
·
View notes
Text
âŠi lost the tag limit war
the reader changing the subject the instant she feels seen by minho is such a subtle but valuable hint that i think says a lot abt the type of person she is, that moment really stood out to me! i know i literally just said this but right down to every minute detail, you've characterized both lino and the reader so masterfully it has to be the most enjoyable aspect of this story for me...and on top of that i just love how you write their conversations so much, theyâre both such lil nerdsâŠmy intellectually stimulating smarties debating w each other even now đ„° it all feels so comfortable and natural and draws me into their relationship w such ease!
their discussion abt colors is hands down one of my favorite scenes in all of invisible thread!! it's such an oddly heartwarming conversation and that perfect, out-of-the-box way of thinking thatâs just so undeniably minho...it almost reminds me of synesthesia how he describes feelings through color! "the very essence of our humanity" "the orange that paints the sky when the sun is about to dip into the ocean" the way you embodied each colors through emotions/experiences was so wonderfully done, i understood each one instantly like it was a picture being visualized before my eyes. it makes it even more touching that minho and the reader come to understand each other on a whole new level through that way of communicating their moods <3 and for some reason when he gives the example "i feel like that moss green that no one seems to pay attention to" that really tugged at my heartstrings ă
it almost feels like he isnt just giving a hypothetical there, like he's giving a small glimpse into his true feelings without saying it outright. maybe he feels invisible deep down, too
them falling asleep together on facetime was so soft and tender ă
ă
leave it to lino to ramble abt sous-vide as a bedtime story and complain abt getting SCAMMED lmao the way that is actually smth he would say đ "he closes his eyes, thinking that maybe he just found the silence you talked about earlier on" this line got me so good ): it seems at first that he's bringing the reader peace but she's bringing him peace in her own way as well...her feelings abt his eyes changing from fear to longing is such a lovely detail and HER COMPLIMENTING THEM!!! HIS STUNNED REACTION </3 "this is the first genuine compliment he's ever received" oh my god does my moss green theory actually have any merit.....does he really feel invisible to the world too...do not do this to me sahar ă
ă
but the way he thinks such lovely, adoring things abt the reader in that moment but instead of voicing them he whines abt being hungry....so endearing and so HIM i cant get enough of how youve written minho here ur singlehandedly reminding me why he is allegedly the love of my life
the kintsugi mention made my heart leap in my chest!!! "when you look at that vase, you know it was once broken, but it doesn't take away from its beauty" please...that sentence in itself is so moving when you apply it to the context of what the reader has been through her whole life, not just a single crack but repeated breakages. and for it to come from someone like minho; it feels like exactly what the reader needs to hear to truly begin to heal herself...he doesn't coddle her but is still so gentle, putting things into perspective like nobody else can w his unique worldview and mental strength ă
ă
and i think i just lost my mind realizing that this scene loops right back to the clay comparison you drew at the beginning of the story oh my GOD....the reader is like a clay pot molded by her mother, broken in places and repaired over and over to create smth still damaged but just as valuable...and lino is the gold filling in the cracks....sahar you are INSANE for this one im kissing ur brain and tucking it gently into bed
the scene w minho in the rain đ i was not prepared to see my meow meow upset...but i love the way you wrote it so much. how oddly quiet he is, even to the point where he's not commenting in class or teasing her, and that's the key detail that lets the reader know smth's off w him...i also love that nothing in particular caused his low mood. it's such a human quality, and he allows himself to be human and feel his feelings until they pass. "he knew his emotions would regulate themselves" i cant explain why this line stood out to me so much i really love it, i think it's just such a shining example of minho's mindset...not necessarily optimistic, but practical enough to not be completely swamped by the darkness either. it creates such an interesting contrast to the reader's personality to see how they both handle their emotions, w her pushing hers away and him letting them run their course. but the fact that he typically tries to retreat into himself until he feels better, yet strangely enough, he doesn't mind it as much as he'd expect when the reader catches him in a vulnerable state...my babies ă
i also really loved the part where he uses her shower and thinks abt the scent of her soap as he washes up, it's so so sweet n intimate i'm such a sucker for things like that ): there are so many small things minho notices abt her like it's the most natural thing in the world, they're both so attentive of one another
"you were both just trying to make it through the day" and "he knew he wasn't invisible. at least not to you" were critical hits to my heart...it feels like a breakthrough in their relationshipâthe first time the reader truly truly sees minho, all sides of him, and she accepts them all without question <3
the gradual progression of their friendship is so gratifying to read bc of how organically you made it all flow together!! i adore the entire sequence that shows us how they start to care for each other more and moreâŠthe casual intimacy of the reader applying her lip tint to his lips (and him not studying for his quiz on purpose đđ come ON) lino worrying abt her eating enough, the reader tying his bangs out of his eyes, complimenting him so matter-of-factly, and him BLUSHING ALL OVER THE PLACE itâs so over for me x2 they are so tender in their actions even when they tease each other nonstop. it all leads up so perfectly to the point in the story where minho finds himself being drawn to her apartment without even realizing it when he doesn't feel well. the subtle shift from him initially trying to shut her out bc he's so used to managing his bad days on his own, to him eventually leaning in to her kindness and seeking her company instead...and the way she just understands what he needs immediately, allows him to sit in silence and simply exist in peace next to her. describing his mood as "too much of every color" really struck a chord w me as well...i'm just so so in love w the running theme of colors you included throughout this story, it's such a brilliant way to put emotions into words <3
the lil parallels here n there from the beginning of their relationship until now are so cute as well; how lino makes breakfast for her the first time and leaves before she wakes up, but this time, he promises to stay and eat with her...to not be invisible ă
ă
i think what's making me craziest of all is how they're both so hyperaware of each other's touch. like when their shoulders brushed while sharing the reader's umbrella, how the reader suddenly finds it difficult to concentrate on her book when lino holds her wrist as she shields him from the sunlight...and little does she know it's the exact same for him too, like when she rested her head on his thigh and all he could focus on was the sensation of her hair tickling him đ they are so enamored w each other and have become so tangled up in each other little by little...they don't even fully realize it yet but they've made a permanent place in each other's lives now
"you were already on the other side, you realize. his eyes pulled you in and you were stuck in there, swimming in a pool of honey" oh my GOD!!! ă
ă
ă
ă
her feelings abt minho's eyes changing from fear, to longing, to at last the comfort of getting to see the other side of those black holes...this line hit me like a truck it might be my favorite from the entire fic ă
i have a feeling i'll be saying that abt many more lines to come when you verbalize things in the most poetic ways imaginable heheh but this one truly got me so good, the delicacy in which you describe minho makes the reader's growing affection for him all the more heart-fluttering~
minho hesitating to wipe her tears )): the way he's so careful abt touching her in any unwarranted way bc he can sense that she shies away from skinship is so devastatingly sweet...and then him pinching her right after to make her stop crying NEVERMIND I CANT STAND HIM ACTUALLY. but the way he consoles her is so endearing and so so minho...very simple and sincere, he knows her well enough to immediately figure out the best way to take her mind off of the issue instead of dwelling on it. "you didn't care what shape he was in, you just needed him to be in it" i've already pointed out so many lines oh my god i'm so sorry but each one is like another arrow through my heart ă
ă
i feel like this sentence is such a perfect testament to the reader and lino's relationship; they've both seen each other at their best and worst and it doesn't change anything abt their feelings, they care for each other unconditionally đ also the reader being afraid of physical touch bc she craves it is SO heartbreaking but so raw...i think it aligns so well w her past bc she's so used to either being invisible, or only being perceived negatively when she is perceived. it makes perfect sense how terrifying she'd find it to bare herself to minho when her whole life she's been deprived of genuine affection...you've really done such a phenomenal job of characterizing both her and lino i cant say it enough!
now...the entire final scene...where do i even begin...i had a feeling the climax of the story was going to hurt but not like this ă
ă
the reader's inner turmoil as she debates reaching out to her mother again, that conflicting mix of hating her yet somehow still missing her...it's such an inexplicable and confusing feeling for ppl who have experienced that kind of neglect but so so real and you captured it so candidly. it really added a whole new layer to the reader's humanity, for her to be unable to completely let go of their relationship no matter how painful it is to hold on to...for her to cling to the hope that maybe she could be worth smth to her mother if she did everything right ): i genuinely had the exact same reaction as her when you revealed that her mother had deleted her phone number...it felt precisely like a bucket of ice cold water to the head. the reader trying to pinpoint the exact moment in time where her mother stopped loving her was what really crushed me most...what a heart-wrenching sentence ă
ă
the fact that she's tried to hard to find solace in other places and people and tried to grow into her own person after entering university, but even so, those marks left from her childhood are still there...a vase full of cracks đ as much as it hurts to read, i love that you included this bump in the road of her healing journey and made a point to highlight that healing isn't linear
and minho đđđđđ the way he handled the reader's outburst is so touching...the way he's immediately able to recognize that her feelings are misplaced and smth much deeper is going on beyond what he sees on the surface...using that astuteness to put his own feelings to the side in the moment is so minho. this entire scene is just blossoming with powerful lines i can't forget, but i was especially affected by the reader saying "i'd need you and i can't afford to need someone else." it's such a tragic summarization of her in my opinion...how she went her whole life being unable to rely on anyone but herself, so the moment she's faced w minho, all her instincts say to reject it no matter how badly she craves that intimacy ă
ă
and lino saying "i'll be by your side for as long as you'll have me" is such a beautiful declaration of love...it's so selfless and unconditional, and it fits so seamlessly w how their relationship progressed throughout the story, how they were by each other's sides at their best and worst moments.
"the world doesn't stop because we need it to" "we'll make it stop" and then describing their kiss as like "seeing color for the first time"...i'm going to melt into an inconsolable puddle over all these callbacks to their first date together don't think i didn't catch the ways you weaved those in throughout this final scene..you made it feel so complete, like things have come full circle. i already mentioned how much i loved their conversation abt describing colors to the blind, so for their first kiss to be written that way, like the reader was blind to the true color of the world until she met minho....i am going to be ill that is so intensely romantic sahar ă
ă
ă
ă
"he was the invisible thread stitching your wounds back together." another heartaching line ): what a way to personify the quiet love minho provides...it may be invisible to everyone else, but not to her
i'm so sorry for my horrifically long comment haha but i'm just thrilled i was finally able to read this beautiful fic đ just as i'd predicted, you're a phenomenal writer!! the amount of love and effort you poured into it went above and beyond, i hope you're so proud of yourself for creating such a stunning work!! it's very clear to me how every interaction you wrote between minho and the reader was so carefully thought out and so meaningful to the overarching theme of the story, it's all done with care and purpose and there's smth special to be found in each line of dialogue! it's like you carefully stacked more and more on to the foundation of their bond until before we know it, there's an entire home there that they built steadily together. that kind of subtle progression is my absolute favorite thing. i'm also so blown away by how the reader's mother, though never actually making an appearance until the final scene, has such an heavy impact over the narrative. it's like she's a ghost haunting the reader's every action, every decision, every inner thought...i find it so impressive how you were able to incorporate that effect into the story without us even needing to meet the mother! and i must've mentioned countless lines that stuck w me throughout the fic, but just know that there are countless more i could've pointed out as well...you truly write so so beautifully. so poetic and emotive, but also not so flowery that it becomes hard to follow, i'm truly floored by your ability to achieve that perfect balance! on top of the story being so immersive in itself, your writing style made invisible thread such a genuine delight to read <3
this feels like the kind of story i'll be thinking abt for a long time after finishing it, the kind to revisit over n over bc i'm sure there are so many lil easter eggs you included that i may have missed! i'm positive i'll come back to it many times in the future hehe...but i can't wait to read more of your writing as well! ^_^
Invisible thread- one
pairing : minho x reader
genre : university au, academic rivals to lovers (rivals not enemies because they respect each other), slow burn, fluff, angst.
warnings : reader has a very bad relationship with her mother, insecurities, talk about murder but as a joke, mention of alcohol, reader has she/her pronouns.
summary : Your studies were your lifeline for as long as you can remember. What happens when Minho comes into your life and rips it away from you?
word count : 20k
Author's note : I've been working on this fic on and off for the past two months, so if you do enjoy reading, please let me know. asks, comments, reblogs i read them all and they truly make me the happiest <3 (also i based this off my own college experience, where we study two terms and there is one person on top of the class every semester)
part two
You have always been first in your class.
Not because you particularly enjoyed studying. You simply felt that your worth was solely tied to the marks on your papers.
You never wanted to crumble under the pressure of studies, to hole yourself up in your room for an assignment you wonât remember in a month. But achieving good grades was the only way for you to feel seen; to make someone stop in their tracks and acknowledge you.Â
A simple âgood jobâ that you preserved inside your mind, as a reminder that you did exist to other people. Considering that the majority of your life was spent in silence.Â
Your mom put a roof above your head and food on your table, but she never asked about your day, nor did she seem to care. You felt as though you were no more important to her than the tapestry hanging on your wall.
At times, you imagined that if you stood close enough to that tapestry, you could merge with it as one. The intricate embroidery would wrap around you and draw you in. And your mother wouldnât notice. She would regard you with the same indifference she showed towards that textile- a mere decoration, at times a nuisance when she had to dust it.
You always ate your dinner alone. When you scraped your knee, you tended to the wound by yourself. No one attended your childhood musicals, and you patted your back when you cracked an egg without dropping a shell into the bowl.Â
Youâve come to learn since your young age that all your milestones, both small and significant, would be celebrated alone.Â
On the rare times your mother would acknowledge your presence, sheâd unleash a flurry of criticism your way as if she was eagerly awaiting the opportunity to strike you down. She'd toss crude comments over her shoulder as easily as a casual hello, leaving you feeling battered and bruised in her wake.Â
You felt as if you were shoreline rocks, and your mother was the ocean. You never knew if she would be like a gentle tide, barely brushing against you, or an enraged storm, mercilessly crashing down on your being. And you weren't sure which one was worse: to be invisible or to be seen and despised. Â
Thatâs why you grew up plagued with self-doubt. You made friends throughout your school years but you never allowed them to get close enough to really see you -you feared that they might glimpse the very thing your mother seemed to despise in you.Â
Throughout your childhood, you were like soft clay in your mother's hands- pliable, and easy to mold. And she indented you, everywhere, carved in edges and dips where they should not have been ones. Handled you roughly when you should have been treated with care. And as the years went by, you hardened- much like clay, but her touch remained imprinted upon you. It was difficult at times to discern who you were and who she made you to be.
You tried to start anew when you went away to university; to rewire your brain into believing that you were enough- you exist and you shouldn't prove to anyone that you deserved to be alive. But her words haunted you, they were like skeletons in your closet- but the closet was you. You could never part from them.
So, you fell back into the same pattern of seeking good grades and congratulatory words from your professors. Every A+ you got infused you with a momentary sense of worthiness.
But unlike in high school, you weren't always the best. Your competition came in the form of a single man named Minho, who seemed to excel in every class you shared.
Minho was mostly quiet, but whenever he spoke, you found that his words carried weight. Your professors consistently agreed with his points, and you envied the confidence he exuded. You wondered what it must feel like to be so sure of oneself.
It wasn't until a month into the year that you had your first interaction with Minho. You were in your Constitutional Law class when your professor Kim brought up the notion of âSeparation of Powersâ. You were arguing that judges shouldnât be included in the writings of law when you heard a scoff from the row behind you. You turned around, raising a brow at the culprit, "Is there something youâd like to say?" you asked.
And in response, Minho smiled lazily, an air of smugness surrounding him, "I just donât agree." The professor urged him to explain himself, so he leaned back into his chair, eyeing you. "Judges are the ones who practice the law every day, and sometimes they find that none of the written texts fit their case. If they get involved in lawmaking, they can help address those gaps or uncertainties."Â
"Who's to say that those judges arenât biased or politically motivated? Theyâll end up writing laws to fit their own preferences," you pointed out, raising an eyebrow at him. "We elect judges to interpret and apply laws, not make them. If they start writing laws too, we'll be violating the separation of powers between the legislative and judicial branches. That's what keeps our entire system from crumbling."
Minho rested his chin on his hand, tapping his cheek thoughtfully with his index finger. "Arenât legislators prone to biases too? Your point doesnât stand then," he challenged, tilting his head to the side, "and judges can participate without going overboard. They can provide input on proposed laws without actually drafting them. That way, we ensure that the laws are crafted with a clear understanding of how they'll be put into practice."Â
"If your main concern is to ensure that the laws are impartial, we have people who work as consulting experts whose job is exactly that," you flashed him an innocent smile, firing back. "Also, wouldnât these overstepping branches put the judges in a position to be perceived in a bad light? Is that what you want?"
Before Minho could respond, Mr. Kim intervened, putting an end to your debate, "Let's save this energy for your essays and see who can convince me more."
You gave a quick nod, swiveling in your seat without a backward glance. However, you could sense Minhoâs gaze penetrating through your back- as if he was trying to read your most intimate thoughts.Â
That was the first thing you noticed about Minho when he walked over to you. His eyes were brown, not a special color by any means. But they held a certain depth to them that seemed to draw you in like a black hole. You weren't sure what you would find on the other side, nor did you have any desire to find out.
He outstretched his hands towards you, stopping you in your tracks. "Minho," he introduced and your hand met his in a firm grip. The second thing you noticed about him was the coldness of his hand, as it wrapped tightly around your palm.Â
Suddenly you were taken back to when you built a snowman for the first and last time. You were just seven and the ice was freezing, numbing your fingers as you worked. Your mother never told you that you shouldâve worn mittens, or a thick jacket to fight off the cold when she saw you walking out of the house. The memory of your cold hands and the horrible illness that followed still left a bitter taste in your mouth, like an unripe fruit. With a jolt you dropped his hand, forcefully pulling yourself away from that memory.Â
"Yn," you said back, and he smiled to himself, repeating your name slowly, each syllable dripping from his tongue. Â
"We'll see who'll write the best essay, right?" he asked, clearly challenging you. There was a gleam of excitement in his eyes that reminded you of a child gazing up at cotton candy.Â
That was the third thing you noticed about Minho; how expressive his eyes were. They moved with his every word, punctuating them.Â
He was infuriating but also amusing. You've never had a clear competitor in your life. Or maybe you had, but you didn't notice them. You were always so reclined on yourself, trying to survive the day, you didn't pay enough attention to your surroundings.
"You want to compete with me?" You asked, and he smirked, leaning against the door, arms crossed in front of his chest. "What? Scared youâd lose?"
"Please." You rolled your eyes at his taunting, "Donât come crying when I win."
"Weâll see about that!" He shouted after you as you walked ahead, leaving him behind.
This essay was insignificant. A simple way for your professor to assess your knowledge and work approach. And yet, you found yourself staying up all night to complete it. There was no way you were going to let Minho take this one thing from you.
Who were you if not the best in your studies? You were deathly afraid to find out.Â
Later on that week, the professor handed you your grade back, 98%. You turned around to show Minho your mark, and so did he. You surpassed him, only by mere percents. "I told you so," you smiled cheekily and he pouted, holding a hand to his heart as if your grade wounded him.
"I'll beat you next time", he mouthed and you chuckled, "Whatever helps you sleep at night."
âčâčâč
The first time you studied with Minho was in a cat cafĂ© near campus, called Limbo, about two weeks after your initial interaction. You stumbled upon it serendipitously while strolling through your university town. You couldnât study at home, since you were easily distracted in there, and the eerie silence of libraries often left you unsettled.
Limbo, however, offered the perfect middle-ground: it was calm, not overly crowded, and the buzzing of the coffee machine blended harmoniously with the occasional mewls of cats, which helped you concentrate better.Â
You were sitting in a secluded corner table at the café's back, a sleeping black cat comfortably nestled in your lap when you sensed a shadow loom over you. You glanced up quickly to find Minho. He was clad in a grey hoodie sporting a bunny holding up its middle finger. You had to bite your cheek to suppress a grin at his clothing attire.
"What are you doing here?" He asked.Â
"You know for someone smart you sure ask stupid questions," you remarked, already looking down at the papers scattered in front of you.
He huffed, taking a seat at the table right next to yours, "I canât believe that of all places youâve found this cafĂ© to study in."
"My apologies, am I disturbing you, your highness?" You asked sarcastically, and in retort, Minho mimicked your words in a high-pitched tone. You threw the pillow right next to you at his head, and Minho swiftly ducked, easily avoiding it. He chuckled loudly while you glared at his laughing figure. That was the end of your conversation that day.Â
From that moment forward, it became a routine for the two of you to study at Limbo, every Saturday, without fault. You didnât explicitly plan on it, but it seemed that both of you found it comforting to work there. And you could also tell that, unlike you, it wasnât Minhoâs first time coming to Limbo. He was friends with the owner, a sweet middle-aged man who offered you pastries whenever you stayed there until closing. The cats seemed to know him too, they mewled at his feet whenever he entered and he always greeted them with a soft smile on his face.Â
You didnât talk much in those unofficial study sessions, the both of you were consumed by your own work. But youâd steal quick glances at him every now and then, the sight of him so concentrated only fueled you to work harder.
Admittedly, your competition left you feeling anxious for days on end at first. Each time Minho came out on top, youâd found yourself losing your grip. Your studies have been the one anchor keeping you afloat your entire life, and now, Minho was ripping it carelessly away from you. So, you resented him- you were human after all.
But then, you realized that Minhoâs taunting wasnât malicious. He wasnât competing with you to hurt you, he was doing it for amusement only.
You've slowly started to learn that despite his relentless teasing, Minho had a gentle aura surrounding him. Glimpses of which occasionally emerged like rays of sunshine piercing through a thick cloud cover.
True, he chuckled when you accidentally bumped your head on the table while retrieving a fallen pen. Yet, you also noticed how he began to cover the table's corners with his hand whenever you bent down. He swiftly retracted his hand, seemingly believing you didn't notice, but you did.
During class presentations, he deliberately prepared challenging questions for you, urging you to study twice as hard to ensure no stone was left unturned. Yet, whenever the professor praised your performance, Minho offered a subtle thumbs-up as a gesture of support. He winked at you each time he got the right answer and you didnât. However, when he noticed you struggling with a particular subject, he scooted closer and patiently explained it to you. He got up before you could thank him, swatting his arm in the air as if he didnât do anything of significance.Â
To show your appreciation, you bought him a drink that day he helped youâa simple gesture that sparked an ongoing game of "win a bet, get free food". You bet on who would receive the first mark on an assignment or who would finish an essay first- anything to further deepen the competition between you.
That's how you came to know that he loved puddings, among other things.
Curiously, as the months went by, your mind began to retain these little details about him. How his eyelashes fluttered like butterfly wings when he blinked repeatedly during your conversations. How he glanced at the ceiling when lost in deep thought as if he was waiting for the answers to descend from the sky. Or how his lips take on the shape of an "o" while thinking of his response during one of your many debates. But you supposed that it was natural to take notice of such things when you spend countless Saturday afternoons with the same person.
You were still studying for someone else, in the sense that each time you stayed up working, it was solely to prove your worth to Minho. But at least unlike your mother, Minho's words never haunted you at night.
âčâčâč
Just like that, four months have gone by since you joined your university as a law major. It was nearing finals week and you were preparing it at Limbo. Minho was naturally present too, at his usual table right next to yours.
On the last weekend before the beginning of your finals, you were head-deep into your Criminal Law documents when Minho abruptly got up from his seat and settled in the chair in front of you.
"Yn," he whispers and you glance at him, "What?"Â
"I have an idea."
"Keep it to yourself," you grin sarcastically, only for him to pick up your spoon and move it around in a threatening manner.
"Are you trying to scare me with a spoon?" you chuckle in disbelief.
 "Anything can be a weapon if you use enough force."
"Okay⊠that was creepy. What do you want?"
"The end of the first term is coming up. So, to celebrate our little rivalry-"
"It's not a rivalry if Iâm always winning," you cut him off.
"Yeah, thatâs why I have a fridge full of pudding."
"But-"
"Anyways, how about the top of the class takes the other out for dinner? A fancy one." He suggests, his gaze fixed on you.
"No, thank you. I already see you enough in classes."
"Didnât think you wouldnât up for a bet. Guess I was wrong," he remarks, a cheeky smile drawn on his lips. He knows you couldnât possibly say no now. Â
"Fine," you roll your eyes at his proud expression. "Prepare your wallet."Â
"Mm, sure," he responds, before rising from his seat once more.
That day, you both lost track of time as you studied in Limbo until it closed down. When you finally stepped outside, stretching your tired limbs, you were met with the sight of falling snowflakes.
"Nooo, go away. I don't want to watch the first snow with you," Minho whines, referring to the superstition that watching the first snowfall with someone could spark love between the two of you.Â
"As if I could ever love you," you laugh at the ridiculous idea, "thatâd just be signing a death warrant."
You resume walking towards your apartment when suddenly something freezing and hard hits your back with enough force to make you stagger. Turning around slowly, you find Minho erupting in laughter, his body filled with uncontainable joy. Heâs jumping and clapping excitedly, and for a fleeting moment, you canât decide if your shock was from the impact or from how beautiful happiness looks on him.Â
Snapping out of your daze, you swiftly retaliate by scooping up a handful of snow and hurling it at him. "Now you are cold too!" you shout, while heâs still laughing uncontrollably.Â
Thus begins an impromptu snowball fight between the two of you. Unsurprisingly, youâre being competitive in this too, trying your best to strike each other before the other could recover. But Minho draws nearer to you, and in your desperation to win, you fall to the ground when he throws a snowball at your chest, gasping as if youâre in pain.
"Shit, did I hurt you?" Minho quickly kneels in front of you, concern evident in his voice. It surprises you for a moment- how worried he seems at the prospect of causing you pain.
But you shake that thought off and push him down to the ground, a proud smile on your face. In his fall, Minho instinctively reaches for you to steady himself, which ends up with you landing on top of him. Your faces are mere inches apart, and a soft gasp escapes your mouth at your sudden proximity.
Minho has a mole on his nose. Youâve never noticed that before.Â
You quickly push yourself off of him, not enjoying being this close to somebody. "Why did you drag me down with you?" you grumble, shaking off the snow from your hair.
"Play stupid games, win stupid prizes," he cheekily stuck out his tongue, and you respond with the same childlike gesture before the both of you burst into loud laughter. The sound reverberates through your entire being, and it echoes in your mind long after the two of you go your separate ways. Â
As you lay in bed that night, ready to drift off to sleep, a quiet realization dawns on you. This was the first time you've touched snow in since your childhood incident.
That unpleasant memory didn't cross your mind once. Instead, all you thought about was Minhoâs infectious laughter, and the surprising warmth it stirred within you.
âčâčâč
You came first in your grade this semester.
True to his words, Minho texted you the name of the restaurant where youâd both meet to celebrate your win. As you got ready for your outing, you couldnât help the nerves creeping up on you. Studying in silence next to Minho was something, going to a friendly dinner with him was another. You feared it would be too awkward and Minho would regret ever proposing such a thing.
So, as you sit in the refined BBQ restaurant waiting for him, you fidget with your hands, counting down to three in your head in an attempt to steady your breathing.
You were clearly not accustomed to existing with Minho outside of the confines of your studies.
"Did you wait long?" Minho asks as he finally pulls the chair in front of you and you shake your head no.
"Are you nervous?" he chuckles at your lack of words, and you frown, suddenly feeling defensive. "Why would I be nervous? This isn't a date."
"Who said anything about a date?" he smirks and you grab your fork threateningly, pointing it at him, "Don't say anything stupid or I will walk out."
"And stand me up on our first date? That's too mean.â He pouts, a hand on his heart and you canât help but giggle at his antics. You were ridiculous for being nervous. This was Minho, the one person youâve talked to the most since the start of this year.Â
"What will you have?" he asks and you smile mischievously.
 "Most expensive thing on the menu."
"So you are only here for the food."Â
"Well, it's certainly not for your company," you wink and he chuckles, his bunny teeth on full display.Â
"And here I thought we were going to be civil with each other."
"When are we ever not?" you gasp dramatically and Minho swats your hand with the menu. "Just order whatever," you finally answer," I trust your food judgment."
"I could poison you, you know?" He smiles proudly and you roll your eyes at him, "Canât you be normal, for once?"
Minho calls over the waiter and places your orders. The food is quick to arrive and Minho starts to grill up the meat, while you cut the Kimchi into smaller pieces.Â
"Here," he puts the perfectly cooked rib onto your plate first and you smile at him, "Thank you."
"Eat up, donât wait for me," he tells you and you nod, tasting the flavorful meat.
"Wow this is really good," you compliment and he smirks proudly at your words, "I know."
Minho places four other ribs for you, without eating one himself. You start to feel bad, so you grab his chopsticks, pick up the meat, and move it toward his mouth, "Open up."
"What?" He asks confused and you wave the food in front of his face, "Come on, you havenât eaten anything."
Minho parts his lips slowly, and you feed the tender meat to him, before eating one yourself. You notice how his cheeks are slightly tinted pink now, and you account it to the intense heat of the grill.
"Oh, let's not talk about studies, my brain can't take another debate with you," you tell Minho in between bites and he grins at you, a gleam of excitement in his eyes. "If you were to dispose of a body, how would you do it?"
"I think our next celebration will be in an asylum." you smile too sweetly at him and he stares at you pointedly, "Please, I know you've already thought about it."
"Fine. Probably in a deserted land. What about you?"
"I'd cut their bodies and then bury each part in a different forest. In a different city."
His answer came too quickly, and you pause in your tracks, "Should I be worried?"
"You are too cute to kill." His tone is sarcastic and you make a show of gushing at his compliment, clasping both of your hands in front of your heart, "Growing soft on me, Minho?"Â
"Yeah, Iâm basically sooo in love with you," he replies with a smirk and you roll your eyes at him, an amused smile tugging at the corners of your mouth.
"What's your favorite color?" you finally ask, changing the subject.
"Purple."
"I'll keep that in mind."
"You'll buy me purple flowers?" He coos at you and you shake your head as you grab the utensil from his hand, to grill the meat your turn.Â
"No. I'll paint your tombstone purple," you grin and he laughs loudly, eyes squinted close, and you can't find it in you to care that the people next to you are staring.Â
"What's yours?" he asks when he calms down and you shrug, "Navy blue, I think."
"You do remind me of navy blue."
"And why is that?"
"When you look at it, at first glance, it looks like black. But the more you stare at it, the more layers you uncover. Just like you. Thereâs more to you than what meets the eye."
You grab your glass of water, gulping it down to hide the way your eyes just glossed over. You suddenly felt bare in front of Minho. How did he know?
You clear your throat, racking your brain for a way to move on from that question. "If you were to describe colors to a blind person, how would you do it?"
"Mm," he looks up at the ceiling as he mulls over your question, "Iâd say that yellow is the feeling of eating ice cream on a sunny day, in an amusement park. Your fingers are sticky but your cheeks ache from how much you smiled that day."
"Yellow is carefree and happy."
"Exact. Now your turn, red."
"Iâd say that... Red is the thrill that rushes through your veins when you do something you are passionate about, you know? Itâs what makes our blood boil and our heart race. The very essence of our humanity."
Minho smiles softly at your words, seemingly agreeing with your description. "Donât you think it would be easier if we simply asked, what color are you feeling today, instead of a 'How are you'?" He questions and you tilt your head to the side, "What do you mean?"
"Well, you could say, I feel like that moss green that no one seems to pay attention to. Or, I feel bright yellow as if the world's energy is stored inside me."
"And right now, how do you feel?"
"I feel orange, not the ugly orange." He precises and you chuckle, "the orange that paints the sky when the sun is about to dip into the ocean."
"A bittersweet orange, an ending that instantly strings along a new beginning. And you don't have time to rest."
Minho places his chin on his palm, eyeing you curiously, "Is that what you want? To rest?"
"Yeah." You admit quietly, "Don't you sometimes wish that the world would just stop, for a few seconds? Just like in a song, right before the beat drops. That silence, I wish I could live inside of it."
"I do too."
You both hold each otherâs gaze for a while after that. You felt as if he was keeping you captive with his brown eyes, and he was slowly peeling each of your layers, in silence, as you were peeling his. For the first time, you think that you and he are similar, more than on a studies level. There was a part of his soul that understood yours perfectly. And it felt good, to be understood, for once.
"If you lived in this silence, what would you be doing?" he asks, breaking the serene quiet that surrounded you.
"Iâd open a cafĂ© that had books. And there'd be a little space, where people could paint. Or do pottery. And Iâd have cats in there too." You reply excitedly, hands moving around in the air, you end up missing the way Minho gazes fondly at you before his smile morphs into a smirk.
"Please tell me you won't be cooking."
"Shut up. What about you?"
"Iâd be a dancer."
"You dance?!" you whisper-shout and he frowns at the surprised look on your face.Â
"Yeah. Why are you looking at me like this?"
"I just never expected it. Can I-"
"No." he cuts you off immediately and you pout.Â
"I didn't even finish."
"I knew what you were going to say."
"Please, I won't make a sound Iâd just watch. Pinky promise.â He grabs your now outstretched pinky with the tip of his index and thumb, lowering it down.Â
"Iâd only grant you this wish when youâre on your deathbed."
"Bold of you to assume you'd still be around."
"Death might be around the corner."
"Stop it."
"Close your door tonight."
"You are deranged."
Minho chuckles at the crestfallen look on your face, "Iâll think about it."
Just like that, three hours of talking have gone by, the conversation flowing easily between the two of you. And when you finally leave the restaurant, Minho grabs you a cab and you wave him off with a smile. You couldn't lie to yourself, you had a really good time with him. You liked to think that Minho was no longer just a rival, but a possible friend.
But now that you were laying in your bed, you couldnât help but curse Minho in your brain. His repetitive talk about murder made you paranoid, and now every creak in your apartment made you feel as if death was really right around the corner.Â
You decide to text him, figuring that if you couldnât sleep because of him, you could at least disturb him for a bit.Â
Yn : I hate you I'm paranoid from your murder talk
Minho : Poor baby
Yn : Is that you at my door?
Suddenly your phone rings, the shrill sound echoing around your apartment. It was a Facetime call from Minho. You panic for a few seconds, before remembering that you just spent your entire night with him. A call canât be more daunting than a real-life meeting.Â
"See, Iâm in my home," he tells you as soon as you pick up and you laugh.
"It's pitch black, I can't see."
"Just say you miss my face." You canât see him but you can clearly hear the proud grin in his voice.Â
"What's there to miss?"
"Are you actually scared?" Minho asks gently and you clear your throat, feeling ridiculous all of the sudden.Â
"There is a tree right outside my window and it keeps rustling from the wind," you grumble and Minho laughs at you.Â
"Trees can't hurt you."
"No shit Sherlock."
"Close your eyes.â He instructs and you frown at his words.Â
"Why?"
"Iâll tell you a story."
"Fine.â You close your eyes tentatively. Itâs quiet for a few seconds and you feel yourself relax slightly.Â
"So, I bought a sous-vide machine and-"
"Is your bedtime story going to be about meat?"
"Yes?â He replies as if itâs an evidence, âNow be quiet." You pretend to zip your mouth and Minho faintly giggles, before resuming his story. "So, I was saying. I bought one and I wanted to experience different kinds of meats. So, I bought a 30-day aged one and a 58-day aged one and I cooked them both."
"What did you use?" you ask quietly.Â
"Just garlic, and thyme, I didn't want to overpower the taste of meat. Anyways I cooked them, but I didn't have plastic bags so I had to go out and buy them."
"Mm," you hum in acknowledgment. You could feel your nerves slowly dissipate with Minho's every word. His story might be ridiculous but his honey-coated voice compensated for it, wrapping around you like a protective cocoon.Â
"And I found pudding there so I had to buy it."
"Obviously," you whisper. Sleep was knocking on your door, but paradoxically you tried to fight it off. You wanted to hear the rest of Minhoâs story.Â
"And I went back home and I cooked it, then I plated it nicely with vegetables that I sauteed with butter and garlic. Just mushrooms and potatoes, nothing too fancy. Again, my main focus was the meat. But there wasn't a difference between the two. They tasted the same for me, for some reason. And I didn't like this because the aged one was very expensive. Maybe I was scammed. Honestly, that butcher looked kind of suspicio..."
Your quiet snores make Minho pause in his tracks, and he laughs quietly. You did end up falling asleep. He can't see your face clearly, but he can see its outline and he stares at you for a while. You look peaceful.
He goes to hang up but his finger hovers over the 'end call' button. You aren't talking, but your hums are quiet enough that they fill up the space around him. It calms him down, and he lets his head fall on the pillow, his phone lying beside him.
He closes his eyes, thinking that maybe he just found the silence you talked about earlier on.Â
You just made his world stop.
âčâčâč
The second semester had just started and with it the return of frat parties. You were excited at the prospect of going to one with your new friend Mina. You met her in the library when you both went to grab the same book. You quickly apologized but she waved you off, handing you the book with a huge smile on her face. She was bubbly, like a human serotonin boost, and she started gushing about how much she loved the author. You saw her again in the campus cafeteria, and she skipped towards you as if you've both known each other your entire life. That was the start of your friendship.
You walk into the frat house, both your arms encircling each other. The flashing lights of the party blind you for a moment, and it takes you a while to adjust to the loud music bouncing off of the walls. But you like it, it was like a shield from the outside world and its problems.Â
You feel yourself letting loose in the crowd, swaying your hips to the music. Mina spins you around and you laugh, dancing with no care in the world. It was just the both of you in that instant.Â
Mina spots Jeongin in the crowd, a friend of hers that she had an immense crush on. You couldnât blame her- he was very attractive; his easy smirk and his blonde tousled hair earned him lots of appreciative looks from the people around him. But when his eyes locked with Minaâs, you found that his face morphed into a beautiful smile, that made his dimples look on full display, as if it was only reserved for her.
âGo get your man!â You shout in her ears, so sheâd be able to hear you.Â
âWhat are you talking about?â She yells back, but you could see the nervous smile on her face.
âHe likes you! Go talk to him!â
âI donât want to leave you alone. We came together!â She clasps your hand in hers and you smile touched by her kind spirit.
âIâll be fine. Iâll go to the kitchen to get some drinks. Go have fun!â
âYou are sure?â She asks, her eyes darting between you and Jeongin, who was still looking at her, and her only.Â
âYes! Go!â You say, gently pushing her away. Mina jogs up to Jeongin who greets her with a side hug. He quickly glances at you and you shoot him a thumbs-up, to which he grins. You loved playing Cupid.
With that, you decide to head to the kitchen to grab a drink. You pick a beer from the fridge, double-checking if the can is closed before opening it.Â
You lean on the countertop, sipping on your drink while you watch the crowd, humming along each time a song you knew played. You enjoyed watching people dance freely from afar, with no apparent care in the world.
You feel someone stand next to you and you brace yourself, getting ready to tell the person off if they decide to bother you. You didnât have the energy for mindless flirting. But then, you smell the cologne that has lingered around you for the past term- Minho. You haven't seen him since your dinner. That was a month ago.
"Fancy seeing you here," he greets as he leans on the counter right next to you, his eyes fixated on the mingling bodies.
You turn around to face him, faking an outraged gasp, "Are you following me?"
"Mmm. You look nice", he compliments and you smile cheekily, "I know."
"Won't tell me I look nice too?" he smirks, leaning closer to your face. "Someone didnât get enough compliments tonight?" You pout, placing a hand on your heart in mock concern.
"I did, but I want to hear it from you. Youâre the only sensible person in this room."
"You look nice. Now leave me alone."
"Come on, I know you can do better than that", he jokes and you roll your eyes, muttering âYouâre annoyingâ, under your breath.
Still, you comply, placing your arms on top of the counter and leaning your head on them to get a better look at him. He does the same, smiling, and you both stare at each other for a while after that.
The strobing lights dance on Minhoâs face, casting enticing shadows on him. You've always known he was a beautiful man; you've looked into his eyes far too many times in your heated conversations. But this time was different, there was no cheeky smirk on his face nor a furrow in his eyebrows. He was simply looking at you, and it made a pool of warmth huddle in your belly. You feel yourself relax under his gaze, everything around you seemingly melts away.
You werenât wrong when you thought that his eyes were like a black hole, pulling you in. But this time, you realize that you didnât mind knowing what was on the other side. On the contrary, you longed for it.Â
"I like your eyes right now. They remind me of the night sky. Black, with tiny little stars littered in them," you finally say.
Minho is taken aback by your words, he wasn't expecting you to compliment him, let alone to tell him something so special. He can feel his cheeks burn red at your words, feel his heart hammering in his chest. He's afraid you can hear it too.
He doesn't know what to say, so instead he clears his throat, plastering a smirk on his face, "I heard better." He hasn't. This is the first genuine compliment he's ever gotten.
"Oh, fuck off," you laugh and he joins you. The music was loud and yet the only sound his ear seemed to pick up was your laugh.
"Are you here alone?" He asks, and you shake your head no, "Came with my friend Mina."
"Did she leave you by yourself?" He frowns and you feel yourself warm up at his worried tone. "I told her to go talk to Jeongin."
"Next time, donât stay alone."
âFine, Dad.â You chastise and he stares pointedly at you, "Iâm serious, yn."
You take another swing of the beer before turning your body fully towards Minho. After a few beats of silence, you finally ask a question that has been on your mind for a while. "Why do you say my name this way?"
"What way?" He questions and you shrug, "Slowly. People used to always rush it but you donât."
"Well, itâs a pretty name. It deserves to be pronounced as a whole."
You beam at his words; you smile so brightly it makes his heart skip a beat. This is the first time youâve grinned this widely at him, no hand in front of your mouth as if to hide it. He did notice how you were a reserved person outside of class, as if you were afraid of taking up too much place. But he could tell you were slowly unraveling, growing bolder with each passing month. He wanted to tell you that if people like you spoke more, the world would be a far better place.Â
But he couldn't bring himself to say all of this, so he forced those bubbling words down his throat. "Iâm hungry," he whines instead and you laugh at his pout. "I'm kind of craving a greasy pizza."
"Should we go buy it? You can tell Mina to come so we can walk her back."
"Iâll ask her."
You shoot Mina a text, asking her where she was and telling her about your plan. She replies that sheâs with Jeongin who just offered to take her home, so you could leave without her.
"We can go." You tell him and he nods. Minho shrugs his leather jacket off, gently placing it on your shoulders. His warmth engulfs you and you sink further into it. His arm hovers around your shoulder not touching you as he leads you out of the party. He has never touched your body, you note, it's like he was everywhere and nowhere at once.
You both walk to an open parlor near the frat house, and you order a Margarita pizza to share. You sit down on a nearby bench to eat it- the night breeze too liberating to pass up on.
As you both finish eating, a cat with white and orange stripes all over her body approaches the both of you cautiously, and you pat her head softly. "Aren't you the cutest thing ever?" you coo and Minho chuckles as he scratches the catâs chin. She purrs at his touch appreciatively, and you smile at the soft look on his face.Â
"Never knew you to be this gentle", you giggle and Minho shushes you, "Let's not do this in front of the cat."
"Why are you acting as if we are a divorced couple and sheâs our child."
"Easy, yn. You make it sound as if you want me to marry you."
"Now you're just projecting," you chastise and he laughs, eliciting giggles from you. He had a melodic laugh, you noticed, and you always felt a surge of pride whenever you made him close his eyes and tip his head from laughter. You felt as if it's a sight only you can see.
"I have three cats", he says softly and you gasp, "Really? We spent all of our Sundays in a cat café and this is when you tell me?"
"I only tell my friends."
"So we're friends now?" You gush and he rolls his eyes at you, "I take it back."
"Whatâs their names?" You ask curiously and his eyes soften at your question- you could easily tell he loved them dearly.
"Soongie, Doongie, and Dori. They are rescues."
"Thatâs very sweet of you Minho."
"Most of my scars come from them though," he chuckles but you sober up at his words, quietly scratching the cat's ears.
"Whatâs on your mind?" He asks and you glance at him. It was scary how well heâs starting to know you. But it was also nice; to be known is to exist, after all.
"I just... Sometimes I wish that memories would leave physical scars on you. Because at least then, you could treat them, put a band-aid on, and watch them fade away day by day. Because when the scars are emotional, you canât treat them, you know? And someday someone brings up a name or a place, or you smell a certain scent, and suddenly they reopen as if no time has gone by at all.â
Minho stays silent for a while, mulling over your words. You don't mind, you weren't expecting him to comfort you. You just needed to free those words from the mental prison you've held them in for so long.
"Do you know Kintsugi?" he finally asks and you shake your head no.
"It's a Japanese art. They put back together broken vases with molten gold. It represents strength despite our flaws."
"That sounds nice," you sigh wistfully and he nods.Â
"It is. When you look at that vase, you know that it was once broken, but it doesn't take away from its beauty, on the contrary, it adds to it. Scars, whether they are emotional or physical are there for a reason. They remind us of how we pushed through whatever life threw at us."
"Am I supposed to be grateful I survived this?" You chuckle lowly, as your hand scratches the catâs ear. Your fingers brush against Minhoâs and you hesitate for a few seconds before moving them away.
"I wouldn't say grateful for what you went through," he speaks once again, "but grateful to yourself. At the end of the day, the reason why you're still here is you. You put yourself back together," he then bumps his elbow into your side softly, "and hey, even if your scars reopen there will come a time when they wouldnât anymore. Sometimes, it takes a while to be okay again."
This was Minhoâs way of telling you that someday it wouldnât hurt anymore. That someday youâd be okay. And you needed to hear that. You needed to hear someone else other than yourself tell you that.
"Thank you, Minho, I needed that", you smile at him and he grins back at you before his smile turns to a smirk. "I charge 15 dollars for the hour by the way."
"Oh, come on! You didn't even say something revolutionary." You are lying. Minho's words will echo in your mind long after this night- a beacon of light to hold onto.
"Oh, so now itâs no longer âI needed thatâ. Tsk," he jokes a smirk still plastered on his face.
"Okay, Mr. Therapist. Iâll pay for your coffee tomorrow, sounds good?"
"I should have you as my client more often," he winks and you laugh, head tipped back. You were grateful more than ever for his teasing, loving how it wasnât awkward between you after your discussion.
"You are a good listener." You tell him as you stand up, dusting your pants.
"Iâm good at everything," he grins cheekily at you and you roll your eyes playfully, "And here I thought we were having a moment."
You both start walking side by side toward your home when Minho speaks again. His tone is quiet as if he wasnât sure he wanted you to hear him. "About earlier, your compliment, I mean. I suppose I didn't thank you. So, thank you," he scratches the tip of his ears and you shrug nonchalantly. "It's the truth. You might get on my ass but that doesn't change the fact you are a pretty man."
He doesnât respond and you tug at the sleeve of his shirt playfully, "You won't tell me Iâm pretty too?"
"But then Iâd be lying."
"Asshole."
"Pretty," he replies without missing a beat.
You laugh loudly, hand tightly clutching your stomach and he joins you. There is a newfound lightness in your steps now. Unbeknownst to him, Minho just managed to lift a small weight off your shoulders, allowing you a brief moment of respite.
"This is me," you say when you arrive in front of your apartment block, "Thank you for walking me home."
"Of course. Don't dream of me."
"Idiot," you laugh waving him off and he does the same. "Oh, and text me when you get home safely!" you shout before heading inside.
For the second time this night, Minho is blushing profusely at your words. He sighs to himself, waiting patiently until a light turns on in your place to leave.
âčâčâč
Itâs been two months since the start of the new term. You still went to Limbo, every Saturday with Minho- even when you didnât need to study.Â
Sometimes youâd just grab a book and youâd both read, a cat lazily lounging at your feet. You started sitting at the same table too; you figured it was easier since one of you always pays for the other. When you have a bet, but also randomly, when you notice that the other person is feeling down and you want to cheer them up without saying anything.
That's why you bought three bubble teas for Minho in a row. He was quieter these days, you noticed. He didnât talk to you nor did he retort back in class. It was the first time youâve seen him this way. As if he was a simple shell of the person he usually is.Â
You were walking out of your Communications Strategies class, which Minho weirdly didnât come to when you realized that it was pouring rain. You smile lightly to yourself, grateful since you thought about picking up an umbrella this morning.Â
As you walk through campus, everyone around you running to take shelter, you spot someone sitting on a bench, completely drenched from the rain. Their head is hung low and you frown to yourself. They would surely get a cold if they stay there.
But then the person raises their head and you quickly realize it's Minho. You jog up to him instinctively, standing in front of him and shielding him from the rain with your umbrella.
He looks up at you and you feel your heart clench. His eyes are void of emotion and he stares blankly at you. "Are you okay?" you ask and he blinks at your words, as if his brain hadn't yet registered that you were there.
"Yeah."
"You don't look like it", you tilt your head to the side and he looks down again. You have to strain to hear his next words, muffled by the rain and his mumbling, "I don't want to talk, yn."
You decide to put away your umbrella and sit down next to him on the bench. The rain falls rapidly on both of you, and you feel yourself grow cold from it.Â
"What are you doing?" He questions, turning to the side to look at you.
"Enjoying the rain. It is kind of stupid that we have umbrellas, right?"
"You'll catch a cold."
"I mean we always complain about the drought and then when it rains, we hide from it. But it's really beautiful."Â Â Â Â Â Â Â Â Â Â
"Stop, I don't want you to get sick."
"Well, neither do I. Let's go eat some soup. My treat."
"Yn, I donât-"
"I thought you were smart enough to know I won't take no for an answer."
"But I-" you cut him off again. "Also, Iâm doing this for me because when you order for two, they give you a lot of side dishes. Now come on."
You stand up and he looks doubtfully at you, before following suit. You open up the umbrella again and hold it over both of your heads. He has to huddle close to you, and your shoulders brush against each other. Once, twice. Not that you're keeping count. But your body is always hyper-aware of Minhoâs proximity. You also notice how he silently moves from your right to your left, this way he's the one walking right next to the speeding cars. Your hold on the umbrella tightens. You were still not used to those small attentions of his.Â
You arrive in front of your apartment block and he hesitates. "Come up, I won't murder you I promise." You joke and he smiles lightly back at your words. Progress.
He enters your dorm and you can see him eying his surroundings. You know that if it was another time, he would have teased you about something- anything. But he stays quiet, and you find yourself missing the sound of his voice.
"Would you like to shower?" You offer and he nods, "Please."
You lead him to your bathroom and show him where the washing machine is. "Put your clothes in there for a quick wash and dry. You can shower meanwhile."
He nods again as you hand him a towel. "I'll be outside."
You quickly leave the bathroom to place the soup orders, and Minho discards his wet clothes, walking into your shower. The water is piping hot, and he leans his forehead on the cold tiles. He doesnât move for the first ten minutes, too tired at the prospect of lifting his limbs.
Nothing particular happened. But heâd go through days when heâd quiet down because everything around him was too much. The feel of his clothes against his skin, and the sun streaming through his curtains. But it always passes. Minho was a realistic man and he knew that his emotions would regulate themselves. Thatâs why he didnât like appearing vulnerable in front of other people.
But for some reason, he didnât mind lowering his guard with you. He knew you wouldnât judge.
He sighs, grabbing your cherry-scented shampoo and pouring it into his hands. He can clearly smell you now. The scent of your hair that always tickles his nose, whenever you are sitting close to him. Your body wash is next and he wonders if this is how your skin smells, like vanilla and jasmine, and something entirely you.Â
Forty minutes later, Minho finally steps out of the shower. His clothes are clean and he quickly puts them on. He dries his hair with the towel as he walks out of your bathroom towards the living room.Â
He finds you sitting on the ground, in front of a heater that looks close to giving up. He makes a mental note of giving you the one he has since he doesn't really use it. You changed out of your clothes too, and you are now wearing a pair of pajamas with little bunnies sewn into it. The sight almost manages to make him smile.Â
"Still cold?" you question when you notice him standing behind you, unmoving, and he shakes his head no.
"Good, the soup is here." You say cheerfully, pointing at the steaming bowls sitting on your table. Minho hums in reply and you stand up, grabbing the towel from his hands to place it on the drying rack.
You come back, a soft green blanket in your hands. You sit on the couch and pat the spot beside you. Minho sits next to you, and you lay the blanket on both of your laps, before handing him his soup.
You start the show youâve been last watching, as you both eat in silence, your legs crisscrossed. You make some comments throughout the episodes. You figured that it was a safe territory, to talk about something as mundane as this. He didn't reply but you didn't mind. You weren't here to have a conversation with him. You just wanted to distract him.
You realize at that moment that Minho always looked so put together to you. But he had problems of his own too. That much was obvious. It made you feel closer to him, in a sense. You were both just trying to make it through the day.
Two hours later, you get up to grab a book, handing Minho the remote to put on a show of his own. You curl in a ball in the corner, reading where you left off last night.
"Can you... Can you read out loud?" Minho speaks for the first time in a while and you look at him. His eyes are closed, his head resting against your couch.
"Sure."
You start to read, and Minho further sinks into the couch. He feels at home here. Because the blanket is soft and the light is dim enough to not hurt his eyes. Or it could be that he smells like you, a scent so comforting he wants to bury himself in it. Or maybe it's your voice that floats through the air, slowly clouding Minhoâs every sense. He feels as if he could see the words you were pronouncing dancing in front of his eyes. You enunciated each syllable clearly, making sure that no sound was forgotten.
As Minho gently drifted to sleep, he felt as if he was part of the words you read out loud. He felt as if you were treating him with the same care, making sure that he knew he wasn't invisible. At least not to you.
When you wake up the next morning, Minho is gone. And his place beside you on the couch is empty. He made you breakfast, scrambled eggs, and freshly pressed orange juice. And right next to it you find a note, "Thank you for reading to me."
âčâčâč
Minho didn't believe in having a lot of friends. He was content with the two people he had, Chan and Changbin. The latter was his high school friend, he skipped a year and ended up being in the same class as Minho. They didn't talk at first until the day Changbin dropped a book on Minho's foot. The brooding man started apologizing profusely, and that was the start of their friendship. They've kept in touch since.
Chan was his roommate at university. It's not that he particularly wanted to befriend him, but Chan was a social butterfly and he quickly managed to pull Minho into his friendly trap. He annoys Minho the most, but in an endearing way. And although Chan is older, Minho still strangely developed a soft spot for him.Â
And he supposes he has you too now. At first, you werenât friends, rivals at most. He enjoyed reeling you up and having you frown at his words in your heated debates. He also liked talking to you, because your ideas were interesting and you always gave him a new fresh perceptive to see things.
Thatâs how he strictly saw you as, an intelligent human who he liked to debate with.
But then he started to look forward to meeting up with you at Limbo. He no longer minded the fact that you took his self-assigned table, from his high school days. And he laughed more freely with you, enjoying how you always had a witty retort sitting at the tip of your tongue.Â
Thatâs how he started to notice things that friends most definitely notice. How you have a charm bracelet you always fidget with whenever you are nervous. How you stray away from physical touch. How you scratch your eyebrow when you are deep in thought.
But also, how you seem to have an obsession with cherries. Your cherry pendant, your cherry-scented shampoo, and your cherry-tainted lips. A friend would most certainly think that your lips are like red wine-stained glass.
He remembers one of the many times when you were at Limbo, and he saw you reapply your lip tint, or so you called it. You caught him looking and he swiftly averted his gaze, but it wasn't quick enough. Suddenly you were in front of him, a tiny red bottle in hand.
"Let me apply it to you," you smiled and he pushed your head away with his pointer finger. "No."
"Please," you pouted and he couldn't help but find you adorable. You sometimes reminded him of a small kitten. But he didnât dare to call you by that nickname.Â
"Never."
"If I score more than you in our environmental assignment then I will do it."
"Fine." he huffed so that you'd leave him alone.
Minho didn't study for that assignment. He blamed it on a headache, not that it's ever stopped him before. And two weeks later you were in front of him, eyebrows scrunched in concentration. You applied the lip tint gently on his plump lips, carefully tracing over his cupid bow.Â
Your face was mere inches away from his and he noticed how you were wearing a gloss today, for change. It was shimmering under the lights and he usually didn't like glittery things, but he couldn't take his eyes off your lips.Â
"All done!" you clapped excitedly, snapping him out of his haze. You then shove your phone camera into his face so he'd look at the results.
"You should be a model. Your face is perfectly sculpted," you comment nonchalantly, before sitting back in your seat.Â
âI know.â He replies confidently, but his hand kept fiddling with the tip of his now pink ears. He couldn't concentrate for the rest of the night.
You were his friend because he always worried if you were eating enough. Thatâs why he urged you to grab a bite in the convenience store near Limbo, whenever you finished up your studying late.
This was one of the many times you sat on the minuscule table outside, hot ramen bowls in front of the both of you. Minho huffed in annoyance between each bite, his bangs were getting longer, disturbing him when he leaned down to slurp his noodles.Â
âHere,â you stand up from your place, a hair tie in your hands.Â
âWhat are you doing?â He questions as you stand behind him. You donât reply, silently grabbing his hair and putting it up in a tiny ponytail, this way it wouldnât get in his eyes anymore.
âVoila,â you sit back down, resuming your eating. Minho was grateful for the dimly lit street because his entire face was burning up. Your fingers in his hair were gentle and he wondered how it would feel if you ran your fingers through it.Â
This was something friends think about, right?Â
"Iâll cut my hair tomorrow," he clears his throat. He didn't know why he told you. You certainly weren't interested in his hair endeavors.
"What?!" you yell, "Don't. Your hair is beautiful why would you cut it?"
"Because it's getting longer."
"But it suits you."
Minho also noticed how you always threw compliments his way. Not in a flirtatious way, but in a genuine one. He couldn't help but wonder what made you this way. Did you so freely give love to others because you knew how it felt to not receive it?
"Iâll still cut it."
Minho returned home; his hair still clipped back in a ponytail. Chan eyed him weirdly but he shut him off with a glare. The elastic remained at his bedside since.
He didn't cut his hair.
The moment Minho started to consider you a close friend, was when you invited him over to watch your show. You didnât force him to open up that night, and he appreciated it, more than he let on.
That's how a week later, he finds himself walking towards your dorm again. The thoughts in his head got too much, and Chan was immersed in his makeshift studio, which meant he won't be free for the next four hours, minimum.
He didn't plan on going to you. It was late at night and you were probably asleep, but his feet naturally led him to the direction of your place.
He knocks softly on your door. He wasn't even sure if he wanted you to open. What would you think of him showing up at eleven pm? He should have thought this thro-
"Minho?" you call out, and he startles a bit, his feet already inching away from the door.
"This was a bad idea, I'm sorry," he starts to retract back but you grab the hem of his jacket to stop him. "Do you... Do you want to watch my show with me?" you ask, a soft smile on your face and he nods tentatively.
"Okay, come in," you open the door wider and Minho follows you inside. The look in his eyes reminds you of the day you found him sitting under the rain. You didn't like it, you wanted him to find his spark back, his usual demeanor. He wasn't deserving of anything but happiness.
"Iâve started a new show, this one's a bit more romantic, so don't go around imagining me as the main character," you tease and he scoffs at your words, a smile tugging at the corner of his mouth.
He doesn't reply, but you don't mind. There was this secret agreement between the two of you, you would talk and he would listen. He needed the distraction, and you needed the company. Sometimes the line between alone and lonely blurs, and on days like these, Minhoâs presence fills the void inside.
You comment on the scenes and Minho hums in reply, you watch three episodes in a row, and your eyes are getting drowsy, so you close them.
"Minho," you call out gently and he turns his head towards you.
"Yeah?"
"What color are you feeling tonight?" You ask, referencing to what he told you on your dinner celebration. That felt like an eternity ago.
"Black." You stay silent and Minho fidgets with his hands before speaking once again. "I feel a lot at the same time, too much of every color. That's why- that's why I said black."
"How can I help you feel yellow?"
"You already do." His admission came softly and it made your breath hitch in your throat. You wanted to open your eyes and look at him, but you figured it will only make him close off even more.
âOkay. Will you stay for breakfast?â, you whisper. You were very sleepy, the soft chatter of the TV and your hushed conversation were like a lullaby to you.Â
"You want me to?" he asks, and he sounds so vulnerable you can't find it in you to say anything but the truth.
"I do," you admit, and that's the last thing you remember before sleeping.
Your head falls near Minhoâs lap on the couch, your hair tickling his exposed thigh. Minho shouldnât feel this way, he thinks. Heâs sitting on the leather couch and his feet are touching the cold floor and yet all he can feel is three strands of your hair tickling him.
He glances at you, at your now parted lips and your relaxed eyebrows. His hand hovers over your hair, but then he curls it into a tight fist. What is he doing? He thinks to himself as he drags an angry hand through his face. He sighs, before standing up and grabbing the blanket you had on the opposing chair. He gently lays it on your body before sitting next to you once again.Â
You told him to stay for breakfast. Heâll stay.
âčâčâč
2 months later
"Yn!" Minho shouts in your ear as he plops down next to you. You startle, dropping the book you were reading.Â
"I hate you," you grumble, picking up your book and he smiles cheekily at you, "No you don't."
You were laying on the grass of your campus garden, in between two classes, trying to kill the time. It was April so the weather was perfect for lying under the warm sunrays. You loved spring, it always held within it the promise of a better time.Â
"What are you doing?"
"I was reading before you got here and started to annoy me."Â
"Don't mind me. Do your thing."Â
"And what are you doing?"
"Enjoying the sun."
"You couldn't find any other place to do so?"
"Nope."
"You're annoying" You try to sound mad but the smile on your face betrays you. You started looking forward to any moment Minho randomly shows up throughout your day. Sometimes it's late at night when he's suddenly craving sushi and he drags you with him because if he's not studying then you shouldn't be too.Â
Sometimes it's during the day, when he takes you to a new garden where he found the quote "cutest cats in existence". Not as cute as his cats, of course.Â
Sometimes it's late afternoon when he just knocks on your door, and he's there with Chan-his roommate who sometimes joins your study sessions- snacks in their hands. You've learned that what Minho doesn't say in words, he compensates by spending time with you. And you didn't tell him but waiting for these moments has been the joy of your life for the past few weeks.
It made you feel excited- like a child waiting up for Christmas morning to discover what gifts they are receiving.Â
So, you resume reading, as Minho is lying next to you. You could smell his pinewood cologne and you wished you could pour his essence into a bottle and carry it with you everywhere.Â
You notice how the sun is hitting Minhoâs eyes directly, and how his eyebrows are scrunched up at the aggression. So, you grab your book with your left hand, and hover your right one over his eyes, shielding him from the sun. Minho's breath tickles your hand and you can feel goosebumps rising through your skin.Â
It's as if every physical proximity with Minho made you feel hyperaware of every part of your body, and how he can lighten it with a simple breath from his part. It made you wonder what it would feel to have his hands on your skin.
As if Minho heard your thoughts, he gently wraps his thumb and index finger around your wrist, steadying your hand in place so it wouldn't strain your arm. You suddenly don't know what page you are in, too overwhelmed by the feeling of his hands on you.Â
His touch is very featherlight and you are afraid to move, to break the bubble you are suddenly pulled into.Â
"Read to me," he tells you and you gulp. You never understood why Minho enjoyed it when you read to him.Â
"Like my voice that much?" you tease, in an attempt to hide how affected you are. You were so close to him; it would be easy to slide down and lay your head on his chest. You wondered how his heartbeat would sound. Was it steady, or racing just like your own?Â
"Yeah, it's calming," he replies sincerely, catching you off guard. You didn't expect him to compliment you, and now you are racking your brain for a retort, anything to make you breathe again.Â
"Growing soft on me Minho?" you say, the same question you asked on your first dinner out. The first time you truly saw him, the first time you felt as if you were two pieces of the same puzzle, just waiting for someone to connect the both of you.Â
He doesn't reply. And you sit there, patiently waiting. His first answer came so easily, so naturally, because he was being sarcastic, "Iâm basically in love with you", he told you back then. So why can't he say it again?
"Yes, I am." He finally replies and you feel your breath catch in your throat. You try to account it for your brain misguiding you. It wasn't Minho speaking, it was the rustling of the leaves and the singing of the birds that you just heard. But it was him, and now his eyes are open and he's looking at you. Your hand is still shielding his eyes and his fingers are still wrapped around your wrist. And you are suddenly feeling. You are feeling too much. You don't know what to do with those feelings cursing through your veins and you can't face them. Because they are scaring you.
"I'll just... Yeah, Iâll just read," you say quietly, too flustered by his intense gaze. You were already on the other side, you realize. His eyes pulled you in and you were stuck in there, swimming in a pool of honey.Â
"Out loud," he says and you chuckle, "Fine, Min." The nickname slips out of your tongue naturally and you quickly snap your head towards Minho to see if he noticed.Â
His eyes are closed, and there is a slight smile on his face, and you can swear that he just repeated the nickname to himself softly.Â
âčâčâč
You've been so sick these past days, you barely managed to go to class. Your head throbbed with pain and your entire body felt as if someone thoroughly boxed it.Â
You were grateful that Minho reeled down his teasing because you had no energy to retort back. He may have noticed how sick you felt and truthfully it would be hard not to. You stayed silent throughout the day, and you looked so pale, you avoided looking at the mirror altogether.
Though Minho didn't talk to you, he still silently placed water bottles and some of your favorite snacks on your desk. You'd down the water, grateful for the relief it brought your sore throat. And when you didn't touch the food, he'd immediately text you 'Eat up', followed by a simple 'Please'. Having someone else care for your well-being felt weird, but it warmed your heart beyond what words could describe.Â
You only came today to pass your Criminal Law mid-term, but your head hurt so badly that you weren't even sure what you wrote on your paper. The words blurred in front of your eyes and you almost slept in the middle of your exam, exhaustion threatening to take over your body.Â
You fucked up, badly. You haven't screwed up this much in years.
You thought that you were slowly getting better since Minho surpassing you no longer sparked an unworthy feeling within you. But apparently, you were wrong to believe so. Self-doubt crept up within you once again, and the ugly feelings it stirred slowly clawed at your throat, making it hard for you to breathe.
It was one test, and yet it reeled you back ages ago.Â
Tears threaten to spill out of your eyes as you hurriedly walk out of your class. You make a beeline for the library, figuring that it will be mostly empty by now.Â
You pull out a chair and sit on it, lowering your head down so no one will see you. Your tears are falling rapidly and you hit your thigh repeatedly. You hated how weak you felt in that instant.Â
"Yn?", someone calls out and you curse internally. You don't have to look up to see who it is, Minho's voice has become a part of you- you could easily recognize it between a thousand mingling sounds.Â
You don't want him to see you, especially not like this, weak and vulnerable and on the verge of breaking down. So you quickly slip a pair of sunglasses on your eyes, before raising your head to look at him. "Hm?"
"Are you okay?" he asks, his tone so soft it makes you want to cry ten times fold. You hated it, hated how attentive he was to you. You didn't deserve it.Â
"Yeah, yeah. I'm just here to pick a book," you lie, abruptly standing up and heading toward the rows behind you. You desperately needed to get away from him.Â
You pause in front of a random shelf and then you feel Minho standing behind you. You grab a random book and he peeks above your shoulder to see it, "Economics? You hate this subject."
"Why are you following me?" you turn around attempting your best to sound mad. When in reality, your heart was brimming with hurt. You wished you could get away from your body and seep into someone's soul to feel what it's like to love yourself.
"You aren't okay," he asserts and you hate it. You hate that he sounds so sure of himself. Was it that noticeable? Were you not fooling anyone?
"I am," your voice is shaking but you are adamant about contradicting him. You couldn't let him see you. What if he runs?
"Then..." he steps forward and you take a step back until your back is against the shelf. His left arm cages your body, but his right one stays by his side. He is leaving you an opening, you realize, an outing in case you feel uncomfortable. Against all odds, you don't.
 "Why are you hiding from me?" he asks, gently taking your sunglasses off your face, and placing them on the top of your head.
You don't look up at him, and he hooks his finger underneath your chin, gently raising your head. When your tear-stained eyes meet his, he frowns deeply, "Why are you crying?"
"it's nothing."
"Yn..."
"I fucked up, okay?! That was the worst test Iâve ever given in years." The tears start to flow at your words and you wipe them away aggressively. You despised crying in front of people.Â
Minho raises his hand to wipe the tears away for you but he quickly retracts it- you probably wouldn't want him to touch your face. It was enough that he had grabbed your wrist a couple of weeks before this. He quickly racks his brain for something to do, because the sight of your tears is making his heart ache in a way he hasn't felt before. It's as if he's feeling your emotions deep within him.
In desperation, Minho pinches your arm and you yelp, startled. "What was that for?" you whisper-shout and he raises his hands in defense, "I didn't know what else to do."
"So, you thought about pinching me?" you chuckle in bewilderment and he scratches the top of his hair sheepishly.Â
"I mean, it worked. Look, you stopped crying," he points out raising his brows at you proudly and you shake your head at him.
"Remind me to never cry in front of you again."Â
Minho grins at you before his face turns serious once again. "Look, you are the smartest person I know," he pauses, adding with a cheeky smirk, "After me of course." Which makes you giggle against your will.Â
"Shut up", you lightly punch his chest and he smiles. "One test doesn't define you. You always work very hard. I wouldn't lie to you."
"Mm," you hum and he frowns at your lack of enthusiasm, but still, he doesn't comment.Â
"No more crying," he wiggles his finger in front of your face and you roll your eyes, wiping the rest of your tears away. "Fine. Pretend as if this never happened."
"What are you talking about?" he asks as if confused, and you can't help the smile tugging at the corner of your mouth. It's as if Minho knows exactly what to say to cheer you up.Â
"Come with me," he tells you, gently pulling you by the sleeve of your hoodie.Â
"Where to?"
"Iâm craving ice cream."
"And why do you need me?"
"You're craving ice cream too," he says in a matter-of-a-fact tone.Â
"Only if you're paying," you add with a giggle and he whines loudly, "I feel so so used around you."Â
True to his words, Minho takes you to the nearest ice cream parlor. It's a 20 minutes walk away and you are grateful for the distance because it helps you clear your head a bit.
Minho lets you pick whatever flavors you want, and when you hesitate between two of them, he tells the cashier to put them both into your cup. This is how you end up with a container of 5 scoops of ice cream. You insisted you'd share, and Minho begrudgingly agreed when you threatened to walk out and leave him.
You then walk to a deserted alley and sit on the sidewalk. You didn't want to be around people right now, and thankfully, Minho understood without you having to say a word. Â
You munch silently on your ice cream and Minho does the same, the both of you lost in your thoughts. You naturally take turns holding the freezing container, so it wouldn't numb the fingers of one of you.
When you're done, Minho stands up to throw it away in a nearby trashcan before sitting back again next to you.Â
Suddenly you feel him gently tapping your hand. You look down to find that you've curled your fingers into a tight fist, so much that there are crescent indents visible on your palm now.Â
"Let's play thumb war," he tells you and you giggle at his words. You never knew what to expect from him.Â
Still, as your fingers hold each other, and your thumb circles one another, you feel yourself calm down slightly. You play a couple of rounds, and you know he's going easy on you, allowing you to quickly trap his thumb down.Â
No one has gone to such lengths to cheer you up, and you suddenly feel so grateful for Minhoâs presence in your life. You didn't care in what shape he was in, you just needed him to be in it. Which in turn makes you think how bad it'd hurt if he ever leaves.Â
You don't want Minho to leave. You've gotten so attached to him that the thought of not talking to him again makes your heart race in panic.Â
Minho notices the change in your expression, suddenly melancholic once again. Your hand has gone limp in his, the thumb war long forgotten by you.Â
He curses under his breath, before looking at you. "If I dance for you, will you quit being so sad?"
"Dance for me?" you repeat incredulously and he nods, "Yes. Iâll show you an upcoming choreography just... Please smile?"Â
"Okay," you giggle, plastering a wide grin on your face.Â
"Not like that you look scary."
"Get to dancing!" you clap excitedly and he rolls his eyes, standing up and looking through his phone for a particular music.Â
"Oh and no comment!" he looks pointedly at you, and you nod, pretending to zip your mouth and throwing away the key.Â
'Finesse' by Bruno Mars starts playing and you are left mesmerized by the way Minho dances. It's short but it leaves you yearning to see more. His body moves smoothly, hitting each beat effortlessly. He made it look as if dancing was second nature to him, that it came as easily to him as breathing.Â
You were speechless, rightfully so. You wished you could build a world where all Minho did was dance.Â
"That was-" you start when he stops the music but he cuts you off instantly, "I said no comment."
"But--" Minho places his finger on your mouth to silence you, seemingly not thinking too much of it. But the feel of his finger on your lips makes you dizzy. Minho quickly takes off his hand, a blush evidently creeping up his neck.Â
"Let's just go home," he sighs in defeat and you laugh despite the intense feelings cursing through you.
You don't know if you are imagining it but you swear that your pinkies brush against each other on your walk back. As if there was this magnetic force pulling them together. You wondered what would happen if you just linked your pinky with his. Would he grab you by the hand or will he let go of you entirely?
You were too much of a coward to find out. You were scared of messing up anything with him. So, you'd settle for this. Stolen glances and random outings. You just need him in your life.Â
"Thank you for today," you tell Minho once you arrive and he shrugs, as what he did wasn't a big deal.
"No, I mean it. Thank you," you repeat, trying your best to convey how sincere you were being. You take in a deep breath, before grabbing his hand and squeezing it, for a fleeting second, before dropping it again.Â
Minho is sure that your hand will now be imprinted into his, that the lines tracing over your palm will merge with his as one. Your touch was barely there but it had electrocuted him. He wondered to himself if his body would be able to handle more from you. But he'd gladly burn in your fires for the sake of holding you. And he'd wait, unwaveringly, as time stretches alongside the two of you. He'd wait as long as it takes for you.Â
"Yn, I..." he stammers, taking a step closer to you. His scent engulfs you and you shamefully close your eyes, inhaling it. When you open them again, you find Minho glancing down at your lips. You gulp, dazzled by his proximity.Â
"You have a mole on your nose," you suddenly speak up and his eyes snap back to yours, an adorable confusion drawn on his features.Â
"I like that mole," you continue and you wish you could dig yourself a hole and bury yourself in it.Â
"Thank you," he chuckles and you nod vigorously, "You're welcome."Â
"Can I ask you something?" he says and your breath hitches in your throat. "Sure."
"You don't like it when people touch you, right?"Â
"Yeah."
"Can I ask why?"Â
You want to confide in him, to tell him that itâs because you long for it, you crave it so badly. That this need has woven itself into the very fabric of your being. An ache so raw that it scares you at times. Youâve never known what it feels like to be held- it was uncharted territory to you.Â
"Isn't everyone scared of the unknown?" you settle on saying, and he nods in understanding. Of course, he understood. No one knows you as well as him.Â
"It's okay. I just wanted to know if I ever overstepped my boundaries."
"You didn't," you reply instantly.Â
"Good. You'll tell me if I ever do, right?"
"I will."Â
"Okay."Â
"Um. I'll get going," you point behind you and Minho smiles at you, waving you off.
You walk for a few steps before coming back again quickly. You then grab Minhoâs hand, gently squeezing it like before, "You are an amazing dancer."Â
And then you drop it, running back towards your apartment block without waiting for a reply.Â
Minho stays frozen in his place. You think he's an amazing dancer. And you held his hand for five seconds.Â
That's four seconds more than the first time.Â
Progress.       Â
âčâčâč
You haven't gotten out of your house for the past three days.Â
Everything crashed around you rapidly, it made you realize that the ground you once stood on was only an illusion, elusive and fleeting.Â
You were doing well; you were getting better. But then Monday came and you went out for a walk in the park near you. As you sat there, you saw a little girl playing on the swings, delightful joy dancing across her features. But then she fell to the ground and you instinctively stood up to help her, only to notice her mother running to her.Â
The world stilled around you as you clearly saw it- how the little girl clung to her mother's embrace, her embodiment of hope and love. You never had that. You donât even know what perfume your mother used because she never allowed you to get that close to her.Â
You stood up abruptly, quickly heading back to your apartment block. As you ran up the stairs, you ended up bumping into one of your neighbors. You were quick to apologize but they ignored you, and the feeling of being invisible came back to haunt you ten times fold.Â
You knew you shouldnât have done it, you knew you should have deleted your motherâs number when she sent you away to university without a backward glance, relieved at the thought of you getting a full-ride scholarship and not needing her anymore. But you didnât, you kept her number in the hopes that sheâd call. On your birthday, on holidays, on a random Thursday to tell you that she did remember who you are.Â
With trembling hands, tears welling in your eyes, you dialed your motherâs number for the first time in a year. You didnât know what you were expecting. Maybe she regrets it. Maybe she misses you. Maybe she didnât find the courage to mend her wrongdoings and that's why she never called.Â
"Hello?" her voice rang through your apartment. Goosebumps erupted on your arms and your hold on the phone tightened. Her voice took you back to memories you thought you had buried. How you spent countless nights yearning to hear the sound of her voice, how you regretted it once she spoke to attack you.
You hate her. You miss her. You want to hang up. You need to ask if she's doing okay.Â
âWho is this?â Her voice was devoid of recognition, freezing you in your tracks. You felt as if a bucket of ice was thrown over your head, dousing the flame of hope that flickered in your heart.Â
She deleted your number.
You quickly hung up, placing your phone down on the table. The tears refused to fall. It was as if your body had long anticipated this outcome, leaving only your wounded soul to bear the pain.Â
Healing isn't linear, you've read about it in books and heard it in shows and movies. One step back doesn't mean that your entire progress is gone. You know this, you've memorized those sentences. So why do you not believe them? Why does it feel as if you can never be free from the past? Why does it feel as if youâll always seek something out of her?Â
Those questions roamed your mind for the past three days, making you too tired at the prospect of lifting your limbs, let alone leaving your apartment. You sent your two friends a text, telling them that you're sick so they wouldn't worry. Not that you believed they would. Nothing made sense to you anymore.
You laid on your bed in utter silence- a tense quiet that was disrupted on the third day by someone knocking on your door. You didn't know who was there; you just hoped that they'd leave you alone.
To your surprise, you open the door to find Minho, some notes in his right hand and a coffee in his left. He sends an easy smile your way. You don't smile back.
"What do you want?" your voice is cold, but Minho doesn't bristle. A cheeky smile settles on his lips as he leans on your doorway.
"You didn't come to class for the past three days, so I brought you the notes. So, you wouldn't think our competition is unfair."
"Competition," you chuckle coldly, heading inside your apartment, and he follows suit. You start to pace around furiously, and Minho looks at you worriedly. "Competition?" you repeat, the word dripping off your tongue like venom. You turn around, marching towards Minho and standing a few inches from him. "You know what? Fuck you and your competition!"
"Yn-"
"Did it ever occur to you that I never wanted a part in this competition? That all I wanted was to be left alone?" you say, growing louder as you jab your finger into his chest repeatedly. "I never wanted any of this! Do you understand? I never wanted to be this way," you shout angrily in his face.
The worried look in Minhoâs eyes snaps you out of your haze. You realize that you are being utterly ridiculous lashing out at Minho, when the one person you are mad at is yourself.Â
Your anger quickly deflates, leaving in its trail an agonizing sadness. It's so sudden that it knocks the breath out of you, and you clutch your chest as if it could soothe the burn in your heart. Suddenly you are twelve years old again, crying in your room because you feel like no one has ever loved you.
But this time you aren't alone. Minho is in front of you, and his eyebrows are so furrowed you want to lean forward to ease the tension between them. His eyebrows, you liked his eyebrows, they were arched, and they framed his eyes nicely, and his eyes are brown and so big, and they always look at you softly and why is it getting so hard to breathe-
"Did I do something to you? Whatever it is Iâm sorry," Minho panics, cutting off your frantic train of thought. But now, the weight of guilt adds to your overwhelming emotions. You shouldn't have lashed out at him, he brought you coffee and you yelled at him. Maybe your mom was right after all.
You shake your head left and right furiously, your words coming out in hiccups. Since when did you start crying? "It isn't- it isn't you."
"Then let me help you-", he steps forward, hand outstretched, but you take three hurried steps back and wrap your hands around yourself protectively. "Donât. Please, don't."
"Why are you pushing me away?" his tone isn't accusatory. You've learned time and time again that Minho wouldn't do anything that made you feel uncomfortable.
"You won't understand."
"Then make me."
"Because Iâm afraid!" the words slip out of your mouth before you can stop them. "Iâm afraid if you ever hug me, I wouldn't be able to go back to hugging myself. I'd need you and I can't afford to need someone else."
You regret the words as soon as they fleet away from your mouth. He would look at you differently, he would find you pathetic and then heâd leave. And you wanted him to leave. But you also wanted him to stay. It was all so confusing.Â
You felt as if your being was torn between two great forces, each one of them trying to win the war raging inside you. You wished someone else would make the decisions in your place, for once.
Minho places the coffee and notes on the ground before approaching you, his palms facing up in a gesture of surrender. "I won't leave you," he says softly. "Iâll be by your side for as long as you'll have me."
"Minho..." your voice catches in your throat as you utter his name- like a broken prayer. He stands before you, his eyes shimmering like the reflection of a river on a sunny day.
"Please, let me make it better."Â
You nod tentatively and Minho comes even closer to you. He was treating you like one would with a wounded animal, giving you a chance to ultimately back out. But for once, you listen to what your heart has been yearning for. Your bones are aching to be held, to feel the warmth of a body against your own, to feel safe and secure.Â
Minho embraces you, wrapping his arms around your shoulders and bringing you to him. You slowly bring your arms up and lace them around his waist. You are afraid, deathly afraid. His grip is loose, and you almost can't feel him around you, but when you lay your head on his chest, he tightens his hold on you and you instinctively let out a sob.Â
He's hugging adult you, the woman whose heart was once again broken by her mom. But he's also hugging little you, the girl who was craving affection from everyone around her. In that instant, Minho is hugging every single version of you that ever needed a hug.Â
You were right to be scared because you don't want to let go, you want to stay in his arms because they feel safe, like a shield protecting you. You can't go back to not hugging Minho.Â
The sensation is overwhelming and your knees buckle underneath you. But instead of holding you up, Minho falls to the ground with you, as if you are two inseparable pieces of one puzzle. He isnât here to fix you, heâs here to break down with you and help you pick up the scattered pieces.
You think back to that night in the park when Minho told you about Japanese vases. At this moment, it dawns on you that Minho has found a way to become a part of you. He was the molten gold binding your broken parts together. He was the invisible thread stitching your wounds back together.
Who were you fooling? It was him; it was him all along.Â
Minho rocks you gently as you cry and cry and cry. His hand finds your hair and he plays with it as you sob. He tells you you'll be okay, you'll feel better and you try to believe him, his words wrap around your bruises like a healing balm.Â
"There, there, love. You are okay", he murmurs, tenderly patting your head. A fresh set of tears wells up in your eyes. Love.
"Iâm sorry. I'm so sorry," you apologize as you pull away from his embrace.Â
"Why are you apologizing? Is it because you wet my shirt? I don't mind," he reassures you with a smile and you shake your head.Â
 "I was mean to you and you didnât deserve it," you explain through hiccups.
"It's okay, you weren't mad at me, were you?" he asks, wiping your tears away so gently with his thumbs, careful not to irritate the sensitive skin.
"No. Still, it isn't okay and Iâm sorry. I'm so sorry."Â
"Shh, don't apologize. It's okay." you look at him doubtfully and he rolls his eyes playfully, "Here Iâll even do your silly pinky promise, okay?" he laces his pinky with yours, but then he suddenly leans forward and places a chaste kiss on your thumb pad. "There, sealed forever."
You giggle faintly as a blush dusts your cheeks, "That's not how it works."
"I know."
Your giggle was far different from the ones Minho was accustomed to. It was small, and it didn't brighten up your face like usual. But he was grateful for it nonetheless. He realized how much he missed your laugh, and how all the other sounds in the world pale in comparison to it.
In that moment Minho thinks to himself that he'd do anything to make you smile again. He'd make a fool out of himself if it meant making you happy. He'd settle for a simple tug at the corners of your mouth, anything but the sadness that seemed etched in your face, as if it was blended into the colors that drew you.
You tentatively move around, before laying your head on his lap. Minho's hand instinctively finds your hair and he starts to gently play with it. It feels as if you've done this a million times before, when in fact it was the first.Â
There was something wildly intimate about laying on the floor with the man who just comforted you. It made you want to spill all your secrets to him, one by one, and have him hug you through them.
"Did you mean it? When you said you'll stay?" you felt so vulnerable in his hold, as if he could twist you whoever he liked. But you trusted him. You trusted yourself with Minho.
"I did. Your walls are always up. It's hard to peek behind them. But I don't want to tear them down. I want you to slowly unbuild them. I want you to do it for yourself."
To do it for yourself, it's hard to even know who you are anymore.Â
"I want to tell you."
"You don't need to."
"I know, but I want to."
"Okay. Take your time, kitten." he pats your head gently, and you try to sync your breathing to the rhythm of his touch. You were grateful that you were lying on his lap since you couldn't see his face. It made talking feel a little less daunting.
"On my 9th birthday... I was very excited. I'd been on my best behavior that month, trying to please my mom in the hope that, for once, we'd celebrate my birthday. Like a normal little family," you smile sadly, you were so hopeful back then.
"My birthday came, I woke up, excited. My mom was still asleep, nothing out of the ordinary. So, I made my breakfast and walked to my school. I wore my prettiest dress and put on pigtails with hair clips. It was my birthday after all," Minho smiles softly at your words, his hand now resting on your own.
"I got back home and waited for my mom to come back. She remembered my birthday, I thought. And then, she came but she didn't talk to me. So, I thought, oh a surprise party!" you chuckle, but this time the smile on Minhoâs face is gone.
"It was then 11 pm, and the hope had slowly died in me. So, in my stupid innocent self, I went to my mom, and asked her "Did you forget my birthday?". And I remember... I remember the way she laughed. Cruelly. Like I had told her the funniest joke in the world. And then. Then she looked me dead in the eye and said 'I hate the fact that you are born. Why would I celebrate that?'"
Minho sucks in a deep breath at your words, and you exhale one right out. It felt comforting, to have someone else stomach the hurt for you. To take the weight off your shoulders, allowing you a few moments to breathe.
"I confronted her about it one day, but she said she doesn't remember saying that. It's funny how it was a random Thursday for her, but for me, it shaped my life." you smile bitterly, "I remember how jealous I was of the way the other kids talked about their mothers. They said the word so lightly. It must have reminded them of sunshine and ice cream and rainbows. But for me, it held an uncharacteristic heaviness to it. I grew to hate the word."
"I drove myself crazy, Min", you whisper and he brings you closer to his body, "was it me or was it her? When did it start? Was it because I was too loud as a child or maybe too quiet? Did I not cater to her fantasies of a kid? I wanted to remember every single thing that happened throughout my childhood, thread through every single memory. I tried to pinpoint the exact moment my mom stopped loving me."
Minho squeezes your hand tightly in his, and you feel as if he was pulling you away from the memory that had long trapped you. You were now watching it unfold from outside of the window, your hand in his, safe from the hurt it had inflicted on you.
"It's not you. It could never be you. Some people are simply not fit to be parents. It's never their kid's fault."
Minho tries his best to keep his touch soothing, to make his voice sound as soft as possible. But he was angry, he was so angry at the world for not taking care of you when you were younger. His heart broke, thinking of 9-year-old you being told such cruel words.
He wanted to turn back time and tell you that you were enough. He wanted to make the pain that seemed so anchored in you float back to the surface, and dissipate like sea foam meeting the shore.
But he couldn't do that. All he could do is comfort present you.
Minho gently pulls you up from his lap, making you sit upright. He crisscrosses his legs and you do the same. Your knees brush against each other and you feel a shiver run down your spine. You didn't know that even knees could emanate such warmth.
"Yn, look at me. The world wouldn't be the same without you in it," he cradles your face between his hands, "You hear me yn? Iâm so thankful you exist."
His doe brown eyes are sincere, and it made you want to believe him badly. That's a good start, right?
"Iâll be back," he tells you, letting go of your face and standing up.
You hear Minho rummaging through the kitchen and you take the time to calm yourself down. Sharing those parts of you with Minho felt therapeutic. As if you were healing parts of your inner child. You have never talked about this with anyone before, maybe this is why it still hurt as badly.
Minho comes back five minutes later, his hands behind his back. You raise a brow at him inquisitively and he just smiles secretly at you. "Close your eyes," he tells you and you giggle, doing as he says. He crouches in front of you, and you hear him shuffle in his place for a bit.
Then, "Open your eyes yn," and you find him, in front of you, a cupcake you had stored in your fridge in his hands, and a makeshift candle lit up. "Happy 9th birthday, love. You did well."
You stare at him in utter bewilderment. You couldn't believe your eyes. How could this man be so thoughtful? He was wishing you a belated birthday, to compensate for the 9th birthday you didn't celebrate.
You panic, at the look in his eyes. You've never seen it, never dared to dream of it, of someone caring for you unconditionally. So, you try to scare him, to push him away. You didn't want him to regret knowing you.
"There are things I need you to know um", you chuckle nervously, "When I... When I throw up, I hold my hair, and when Iâm sick I nurse myself back to health, and when I have a nightmare I- I hold my hand in the dark. It will be hard for me to hold yours instead."
"We'll start a finger at a time, yeah?"
"It will take time."
"I have time," he speaks easily, as if loving you was effortless and not a strenuous task. You couldn't fathom it.
"You are too busy-", he cuts you off instantly, "Not for you."Â
"The world doesn't stop because we need it to." Your voice is quiet; this is your very last try. You are tired of fighting. You are putting down your armor and waving a white flag.
"We'll make it stop. Here, the two of us. On this floor. We'll take as long as we need to."
"I never deemed you as an optimist", you smile a little, a hint of teasing in your tone.
"Iâm not," he pauses, gazing down at the cupcake between his hands and then at you. "But I feel that we deserve a bit of happiness together, don't we?"
"We do."
"Then make a wish."
You close your eyes for a few seconds, before blowing on the candle.
"What did you wish for?" he asks a fond smile on his face.
The answer came naturally to you, you didn't even need to think about it. "I wished for you."
Minho's lips come crashing down on yours, and you imagine that this is what it feels like to see colors for the first time. To discover a new world beyond the one you've always known.
The kiss isn't urgent nor feverish, it is one of comfort. Your lips spilling the words you have not yet said to each other. "I love you," he kisses you, "I love you too," you kiss him back. "I need you to stay," you swipe your tongue across his bottom lip, "Iâm never leaving you," he opens his mouth allowing you entrance.
As you kiss him, you remember a fact you once learned in high school. The human body possesses seven trillion nerves. And for the first time in your life, you feel as if each of these nerves is alive. You feel that even the smallest atom is electrocuted with Minhoâs love and itâs all you know within you. Â
You feel as if the pain, the hurt, and the ache you've been through are slowly unraveled, and in their place, a timid happiness is starting to bloom. You imagine that when Minhoâs lips met your own, the seven trillion nerves inside you exhaled in relief 'We've made it', they said, 'we'll finally be okay.'
Epilogue
You've always thought that epilogues were useless. How can you resume the rest of your life in one sentence, boil down the rest of your existence in mere pages? Because life doesn't stop at the epilogue, and a new book can start once again, right where you left it off. Â
But with Minho, you didn't mind an epilogue. On the contrary, you longed for a soft one. You wanted to rest on this last page, you wanted to lay your worries on the words and tuck them into the syllables. And you wanted to wake up anew.
And this wasn't the end of your story with Minho. A lot happened after it. But it didn't worry you, because epilogues are about the one thing that doesn't change throughout the long march of time. And luckily for you, that constant was Minhoâs love for you. From that day he held you, he has never let go.
It took time, for his warmth to seep through your bones. It took time, for your heart to forget the cold. But you wanted to do it. With him. You wanted to love and be loved.
The sound of cats mewling fills your apartment, pudding can always be found in your fridge and you haven't felt invisible in years.
#FINALLY!!! turning the lights down low scattering rose petals lighting candlesâŠmy date w invisible thread is upon me at last đ„°#also iâm doing a sahar-style live reaction so apologies if i comment on literally every little thing that happens hehe im excited#hitting me w the clay metaphor right off the bat...i'm in awe of how perfectly you described childhood development w just a single analogy#molding the reader when sheâs young n impressionable and leaving those imprints to harden beyond repair even after she's grown#what a beautifully melancholy way to describe her relationship w her mother and how it affects her view of herself i love it so much ă
#lesm inho. leemingo. LEMINHO!!! THE LAZY SMILE NOO U ALREADY GOT ME đđđ itâs so fucking over and i only just started oh my god#his eyes being the first thing she notices when they meetâŠthe reader is just like me fr but describing them as black holes that draw her in#is making me crazy ITâS SO TRUE!!!! the most mesmerizing eyes known to man that warp space n time this comparison is absolutely stunning#the chill in his hand reminding her of a horrible memory like that đ so heartbreaking but also such a clever way to give insight into#the reader's character as well as insight into the the type of relationship she n lino will have and how it will likely resurface old wound#âu weren't sure what u would find on the other side nor did u have any desire to find outâ u conveyed the odd magnetism of his eyes SO WELL#im very glad she got a higher grade than him i was not prepared for the smugness that would ensue if he beat her -_-; but a detail i really#adore is how casually lino takes the loss i feel like it goes to show that he truly doesnt have any ill intent despite being so provocative#the cat cafe is called limbo PLEASE THATS SO CUTE đ lino mimicking her wordsâŠn dodging the pillow i cant stand him actually#to be minho is to be insufferable and get away w itâŠshe should throw a brick at his head next (<- madly in love)#oh my god the part where he laughs at her for hitting her head but from that point on covers that edges of the tables to protect her đđđ#iâm going to be sick to my stomach thsi is the most minho expression of care on earth. all the careful linoisms u included are killing me ă
#comparing his eyelashes to the wings of a butterfly ARE U KIDDING!! that has me clutching my heart it's such delicate n gentle beauty#i love that heâs just as competitive as the reader but in a much more lighthearted wayâŠhe sees it almost like a game whereas she sees it as#a very serious demonstration of her worth. minho eventually becoming the one she wants to prove herself to rather than her mother#is so intensely sweet and heartwrenching at the same time ): in just a few months he's shown her a healthier love than her mother ever did#THEIR FIRST SNOW TOGETHER NONONO đ this entire scene has me inconsolable oh my god LINO W HIS SNOWBALL HE IS SO ANNOYINGLY CUTE#âu cant decide if ur shock was from the impact or from how beautiful happiness looks on himâ critical hit on my heartâŠu painted such a#lovely picture of his laughter i can clearly envision his wild giggles and the way his entire body laughs w him when heâs really excited ă
#I WAS GONNA COMMENT ON THE SNOW NOT SPARKING THAT SAME AWFUL MEMORY THIS TIME đ his laughter brought her so much warmth she didnt even have#the chance to think abt it i'm so devastated by this parallelâŠlittle by little sheâs healing w him and melting the frost her mother left#the way the reader grabs her fork to threaten him like he did w the spoon HELP theyre rubbing off on each other without even realizing it#every character detail u included is so well thought out u did a brilliant job ă
ă
it makes them human and the story all the more immersive#lino letting her eat first while he cooks the meat and him blushing everywhere when she feeds him MY BABY đđ he thinks heâs so slickâŠ#asking how sheâd dispose of a body over dinnerâŠlee minho master of romance everyone đ but literally OF COURSE HE WOULD
6K notes
·
View notes
Text
18+ Minors dni. Buckys innocent neighbor who bakes him cookies and muffins just cause. The girl next door who has the coziest apartment he's ever been in. Shelves filled with books along with plenty of comfy blankets decorating the couches. Bucky has his own place right across but home is with her (even if she doesn't know it yet).
She's the type of girl he's going to take his time with, asking her out on a date, just coffee and a walk in the park. Nothing more than a kiss on her cheek at the end of the night. Another date. Dinner. Another kiss to her other cheek. He wouldn't dare rush anything, especially not someone as soft and sweet as her.
He feels like such a dirty little pervert when he thinks about her afterwards when he's alone in bed, all the blood in his body rushing south, and fuck he's so hard. He tries to ignore it, he didn't want to do something so debauched by thinking of her like that, he even tries to think about his grocery list, laundry, he'd probably wash his arm later, it would probably be fine in the dishwasher-
Nothing worked.
He groans, shuffling and kicking his sweats off, hissing when his hand goes down to tug at his aching cock, relief flooding his veins at the sensation. He lets his mind wander to how adorable she'd be, the way he'd take her apart in the most gentle way. Lay her against the pillows while he holds those soft thighs apart, giving her the most feather light suckles on that perfect clit, basking in all the sounds she'd make. He strokes himself faster thinking about the way he'd get her ready to take all of him. How he'd make it so good for her-shit he was going to blow-maybe if he was lucky, one day she'd let him put his cock in her mou-
"Fuck!!" Bucky threw his head back, spurts of cum shooting from his sensitive head, his post orgasm haze leaving him feeling like a filthy old man. She were here making him baked treats and he was jerking his dick off like a sick fuck.
Then the night finally comes. Bucky is ready to cuddle and nothing else but he's thrown off because never in his wildest fantasies did he expect this.
She is the girl who sends him reeling the first time he takes her clothes off one by one revealing dark ink on her back and hips. He has to suppress a growl, his eyes growing wide at the scantily clad lace that covers her body.
"Like what you see, Sergeant?" she practically purrs in his ear while he lets his han ghost over her bare skin, his chest heaving when his eyes fall to her perfect breasts, hints of silver peeking from under her lingerie, there was no way-
"Can I?" He asks breathlessly, his hand reaching behind to unclasp the bra, those pretty pierced nipples begging to be sucked.
Bucky who turns into a fucking menace, his entire world flipping upside down when she grinds down on his crotch not hiding exactly what she needs from him. He doesn't even have the ability to hide how feral he is, letting all his inhibitions slip.
-
"My little bunny's a slut, fuck, c'mere" He grabs you and tosses you over his shoulder, hauling you over to his bedroom like an untamed beast, tossing you onto his bed with no remorse. You're in nothing but your panties which he rips right off, your thighs squeezing together at the way he stalks over to you, his hungry eyes raking up and down your body without an ounce of shame. He tugs his sweats down to reveal his leaky cock, stroking it at the edge of his bed after tossing his shirt off.
"See this baby? Been fuckin' stroking and touching myself like a fuckin' teenager because of you-" He throws off his pants before climbing onto the bed and kneeling between your thighs, spreading them apart with his knees, "-and you've been here lookin' like God damn sin under those cute little sweaters"
He flicks his cockhead against your clit, humming at the clear beads of his arousal that drip onto your cunt.
"Fuck James, need more, pl-"
"Nuh uh, what was that you called me earlier, sweets?" He lets out a dark chuckle, the veins in his cock throbbing as he tightly holds the base, waiting to hear it again.
"Sergeant" you whine with mischief in your eyes and Bucky is a goner. He'll taste you later and most definitely feed you his cock another day but right now he wants to be nowhere else other than your pussy. He wants to watch you take every bit of him, rolling over to lay on his back while you straddle him, his length slotted against your cunt. He holds it up for you with a cocky look on his face, moaning when his tip breeches your tight pussy, your walls gripping his swollen, pink head.
"That's just the tip baby, c'mon, sit on it, wanna put all of my dick in you, that's it, good girl-shittt"
"Oh fuccckk,s'big" You moan feeling the stretch as you sink all the way down, panting and staying still while you adjust to his size.
"That's it bunny, that's it, ride me, ride your Sergeant" He grabs you by the hips, guiding you to grind down on him, making you feel his entire cock in your stomach. "You're a slut for big dick aren't you baby, acting all cute and shy when all you really wanted was the winter soldier's cock"
Bucky wasn't even sure where all the filth spewing from his mouth was even coming from but he couldn't stop.
"S'that it bunny? Say it baby, tell me how much you wanted my fat cock in you"
"Wanted it! F-cuk Sergeant, wanted your cock s-o-so bad!!"
"Fuck yes!!" His feet plant to meet your bounces, his hips thrusting up, slamming his entire length into you. "M'close, fuck bunny, gonna cum already, I can't hold it-
He doesn't have time to be embarrassed. You feel to good. He rubs your clit needing you to cum all over him so he can let go.
"Please, cum all over Sergeants cock baby, give it to me, be a good girl n'cum, c'mon, cum on my dick, yes, oh fuck yes I can feel it-milk it, shit touch my balls-"
You nearly collapse as your orgasm starts to wash over you, his sponge head hitting the most sensitive parts against your walls while he toys with your clit. His voice is muffled as you start to feel waves of pleasure consume you but you head just enough to reach behind, rubbing his heavy, so full of cum ba-
"FUUUCCCCKKK" He grabs you and wraps his arms around your body while he relentlessly thrusts up, biting down on your shoulder while he lets out the sluttiest, loudest moan with 0 remorse. It feels too good and he's sure the neighbors can hear but honestly, everyone should know how amazing it feels.
-
"I got you pretty baby" Bucky coos as you nuzzle into the crook of his neck, a shiver running through you while you float in bliss. Bucky pulls the covers up, deciding to cuddle up with you for a bit before running a shower, his previous demeanor replaced with the far less debauched version of him.
Anyway, just an idea. Also, it's past my bedtime.
#bucky barnes x you#bucky barnes#bucky barnes x y/n#bucky barnes x reader#bucky barnes fluff#bucky x reader#bucky barnes x f!reader#bucky barnes x female reader#bucky barnes fanfiction#bucky barnes fan fiction#bucky barnes fanfic#bucky fan fiction#bucky fan fic#bucky fanfic#james buchanan barnes#james bucky buchanan barnes#james bucky barnes#bucky barnes smut au#bucky barnes smut#bucky smut#marvel smut#marvel fic#marvel fanfic#marvel fanfiction#avengers fluff#avengers smut#bucky barnes x freader#bucky barnes x fluff#bucky barnes x f reafer#bucky x f reader
5K notes
·
View notes
Text
When Pleasure Calls
Word Count: 1.8k
Summary: In the middle of sex, Sylus gets a business call...only he decides he doesn't want to stop âž(ïœĄË á” Ë )âžâĄ
Tags: sylus x fem!reader, penetration, unprotected sex, creampie, teasing, humiliation, use of evol, use of petnames like kitten, oneshot
AN: Okay so this is loosely based on a tweet I saw and it literally wouldn't leave my brain until I wrote it....so here we are. I figured the best way to end my break and start being more active again was to start writing all the fics that won't leave my head. Enjoy!
Sylus was balls deep inside you, each thrust a raw, primal connection that left you both breathless. The room was filled with the sound of skin against skin, your moans mixing with his low groans, creating a rhythm that was all your own. His hands gripped your hips, guiding your movements, keeping you both locked in the moment, lost to everything but each other.
It had been an entire week since youâd spent any real time togetherâa week that felt more like a year. Sylus didnât waste a second making up for the lost time. What started as an innocent cuddle on his bed, his arm lazily slung over your waist, quickly shifted into something else entirely. One minute, he was tracing slow circles on your back, murmuring something about how much heâd missed you, and the next, the air between you thickened, charged with unspoken need.
Somehow, without either of you meaning to, that easy closeness morphed into a full-blown, heated mess of tangled limbs and stolen breaths. His lips found yours, first soft and teasing, then hungry and demanding, as if he needed to make up for every second youâd been apart. Before long, the room was filled with the sound of muffled laughter, whispered names, and the quiet creak of the mattress as you lost yourselves in each other.
His hands roamed over you with a possessive tenderness, fingers tracing the curves of your body, memorizing the lines anew with every pass. The weight of him above you was a comforting pressure, a grounding force as you surrendered to the tide of sensation, every thrust a wave that built the pleasure higher and higher, threatening to crash over you.
"Nghn, right there! Don't stop, please..." you pleaded, your voice hoarse with desire, your fingers digging into his muscular frame as if your life depended on it. Sylus, attuned to your every need, knew he had found that sweet spot within you, that spongy, pleasure-laden tissue that sent sparks of delight through your body.
Just as he increased the pace, his thrusts becoming faster and harder, driving you closer to the edge of ecstasy, the sharp ring of his phone cut through the air like a knife, slicing through the intimate atmosphere. You froze, your eyes widening as you glanced at the illuminated screen, the unfamiliar contact name confirming your suspicionâone of Sylus's business associates.
Sylus sighed, his brow furrowing as he eyed the screen with a mix of annoyance and detachment. "I can call them back later. Iâm busy right now."
Thatâs when it hit youâthe mission. The Hunters Associationâs urgent directive to recover the stolen protocore, traded away through shady backchannels. You had completely forgotten about it until now. The urgency surged through you like a jolt of electricity. Without thinking, you grabbed his arm. "Didnât you say you were expecting a call about the protocore? This could be it. I need that lead for the Association. Answer it," you urged, your voice firm despite the sharp look Sylus threw your way.
He blinked, then smirked, the kind that was equal parts amused and incredulous. "I donât think Iâll ever get used to my kitten barking orders at me," he said, his tone dripping with lazy charm. But to your relief, he reached for the phone anyway. "Alright, boss. Consider it a favor."
He pressed the screen and lifted it to his ear. His voice dropped into that cool, no-nonsense register youâd heard a dozen times before.
"Speak."
The man on the other end began to speak and you realized Sylus was still halfway inside you. Thinking the fun was over for now, you started to move out from under him, ready to let the moment pass. But Sylus wasn't done. His hand pressed you back down against the bed, and before you knew it, he was thrusting into you again, impossibly deeper this time, his cock filling you completely.
You struggled, caught between surprise and arousal, your body pinned beneath his, his cock completely filling you with each powerful thrust. You tried to silently plead for him to stop, embarrassed by the situation, but your words were lost in the quiet moans that escaped your lips as he pounded into you, his pace relentless. You quickly covered your mouth with your hands, trying to will yourself to quiet down.
"I'll only meet tomorrow. That's firm" he said into the phone, his voice steady despite fiercely pounding and stretching your pussy. As if this took zero amount of effort from him. You tried to keep quiet, biting your lip and keeping your hands pressed to your mouth to stop the sounds from escaping, but it was hard. Each thrust sent ripples of pleasure through you, making it nearly impossible to maintain your composure.
You attempted to scoot back against the bed, seeking respite from the pleasure Sylus was delivering, but your efforts were in vain. With a swift and possessive motion, he wrapped his powerful Evol around your waist, pulling you back onto his cock, sealing your body to his, ensuring you couldn't escape the sensations he was about to unleash.
"Ah...ah..." you panted, your breath coming in short gasps as he thrust deeper, his cock seeking out that sensitive spot within you once more, very determined to bring you right to the edge.
Sylus kept talking, his voice smooth and calm, even as he moved inside you with a fierce rhythm. The phone call was just background noise to you, but you caught snippets of his conversation, the professional tone at odds with what was happening.
"Yes, I understand," he murmured between thrusts, his voice a soothing contrast to the pounding of his cock against your sensitive walls. "No tricks, or foul play. You should know how this goes by now."
You were struggling, trying to focus on anything but the way he was driving you closer to the edge. Each thrust felt like it was pushing you further into a world where nothing else mattered but the heat and friction between you.
Minutes ticked by as this humiliation continued. How much longer could you hold on? How much longer would he torture you like this? The question echoed in your mind, a desperate plea for relief as your body teetered on the brink of finishing.
Sylus's eyes gleamed with a mix of amusement and desire as he looked down at you, fully aware of the power he held over your pleasure. He knew exactly how close you were, how your body trembled on the precipice of release, and he relished the control he had, maintaining a casual conversation while pushing you to the brink.
A knowing smirk played on his lips, a silent acknowledgment of the game he was playingâtesting your limits, seeing how far he could take you while keeping up the pretense of a casual chat. His eyes held a challenge, daring you to surrender, to let go of your control, even as he kept his voice calm and composed, a stark contrast to the raw passion he was eliciting from your body.
He continued his steady thrusts, his movements purposeful, each one designed to drive you further into a world of pleasure, where resistance was futile, and surrender was the only option. Sylus took pleasure in watching you struggle, your body betraying your attempts to hold on, even as he maintained his casual conversation, a master of this sensual game.
"Yes, that will do," Sylus confirmed, his voice steady, his pace merciless as he continued to thrust into you. "I'll have my men prepare the meeting."
Your response was a muffled moan, your body arching against his, unable to form words as the pleasure overwhelmed you. "Mghn... Ah!" you cried out into your hand, your voice a mixture of surrender and ecstasy, your body trembling on the edge of release, the sensations too powerful to hold back.
Sylus, his body slightly glistening with sweat, paused for a moment, his thrusts slowing as he looked down at you with an intense gaze. His eyes, red and smoldering, held a silent command, a silent invitation for you to surrender completely. A slight smirk played on his lips as he watched you, his expression conveying a clear message:
"Go ahead, cum for me."
The tension inside you coiled tighter, every nerve screaming for release as he begun to pick up the pace once more. You bit down on your hand, trying to keep the sounds from escaping, but it was a losing battle. Sylus's thrusts were unrelenting, each one bringing you closer, until finally, with one last, deep push, he let go, pumping his hot and sticky seed deep into your belly just as he wrapped up his call.
The sensation was too much, too intense to resist. Your body tensed around him, shaking with the force of your orgasm, your muffled moans filling the room as you rode the waves of pleasure crashing through you.
"Alright. See you then," Sylus said, finally hanging up the call. He pulled out slowly, leaving you both breathless and spent, the hum of the conversation now just a memory drowned out by the echo of your shared climax.
You lay there, catching your breath, the remnants of your climax still thrumming through your veins. But as the haze of pleasure began to clear, irritation started to bubble up inside you. You propped yourself up on your elbows, shooting Sylus a look that could melt steel.
"Seriously?!"
He caught your gaze and simply chuckled, a low, rumbling sound that only fueled your annoyance. "Oh, don't act like you didn't like it," he said with a grin, clearly amused by your reaction. "How could I ignore a needy kitten in heat for a phone call instead?"
Your glare could have sliced through stone, but he just shrugged, unfazed by your anger. "Besides," he continued, a mischievous glint in his eyes as he chuckled, "I'm great at multitasking. I just secured you that protocore and made you cum while doing so. Shouldn't you be overjoyed right now?"
Despite your best efforts to hold onto your anger, the corners of your mouth betrayed you, tugging upwards into a reluctant smile. The heat rising to your cheeks was undeniable, a flush that had nothing to do with anger. His laughter was infectious, and before you knew it, you were chuckling too, shaking your head at the absurdity of it all.
"Alright, alright," you conceded with a playful roll of your eyes. "I'll forgive you this one time, but don't think this is going to be a regular thing."
Sylus grinned, clearly pleased with your surrender. "Deal," he said, his tone warm and teasing. He moved with that easy confidence of his, leaning down to scoop you up effortlessly, cradling you against his chest.
"Let's get you cleaned up," he murmured, carrying you towards the bathroom with a tenderness that were a stark contrast to the intensity of moments before. His touch was gentle now, a soothing balm to the fire that had raged between you, and you found yourself relaxing into his hold, the last remnants of your irritation melting away as you settled into the comfort of his embrace.
#umi writes âĄïž#love and deepspace#love and deepspace sylus#sylus x reader#sylus#lads#love and deepspace smut#sylus x reader smut#sylus love and deepspace#lads sylus#lnds sylus#love and deep space sylus#l&ds sylus#sylusposting#i need him so bad
3K notes
·
View notes
Text
LOVED YOU AT YOUR WORST - r.c series - ONE
pairings: ex!sweethearts; rafe x thornton!reader; rafe x sofia. chapter warnings: none (angst) chapter twoâ chapter three â chapter four
The bass from the speakers rattled the glass in your hand as you leaned against the porch railing, eyes scanning the backyard for himâRafe.
It had been a long month.
Longer than you thought it would be. Usually, when you and Rafe had your little âbreaks,â they lasted about a week, maybe two at most. It was always something stupid, a screaming match that ended with slammed doors and his truck peeling out of your driveway. But it never lasted. It couldnât. Youâd known each other too long, been through too much, and deep down, there was this unspoken truthâheâd always come back. Or, you would.
But this time was different.
This time, he wasnât calling or showing up at your window in the middle of the night, eyes tired and sorry, pulling you into his arms. The space between you had been growing wider since his dad died. And sure, maybe it was your fault for what you said after Wardâs deathâBut it was the truth.
Still, you hadnât expected him to shut you out completely. Two months. Two months of silence. And the only thing youâd heard about him since was through Ruthie, Topperâs new girlfriend, of all people. A random comment at Maseâs placeâsomething about how Rafe had been hanging around some pogue girl named Sofia.
Youâd rolled your eyes at that. Rafe? With some Pogue? Yeah, right. Youâd pretended not to care when she tossed it out like it was nothing
You werenât stupid.
Youâd always known Rafe wasnât the easiest guy to love. He was complicated, angry, recklessâbut so were you. And in some messed-up way, thatâs why you two worked. Or at least, why you thought you did. You were just as stubborn, just as damaged. But now, as you sipped your drink and looked around, something felt off. Your gut was tight, and that nagging feeling thatâd been growing restless under your skin since the breakup only grew stronger the longer you stood there.
You pushed yourself off the railing, discarding your drink on a table before moving through the crowd, past people you knew but didnât bother with. Your mind was set on one thingâRafe. You were done with the break. You had your space. Itâs time to get back together. It was never even really a question. It was just the way things worked with you two.
But then there was Ruthieâblocking your path, her wide smile dripping with the kind of smugness that set your teeth on edge. She looked like she was reveling in your misery and that little giggle she let out only made it worse.
"So glad you could make it!" she sang out, her voice too sweet, too bright. Her eyes flickered over you like she was sizing you up, taking stock of every inch of your perfectly put-together outfit.
You forced a smile, âYeah, well, wouldnât miss a party like this,â you said, keeping your tone casual.
You werenât in the mood for whatever game she was playing.
âOh, I just bet,â she replied, her smile growing wider. She stepped closer, her breath reeking of cheap wine, and you had to resist the urge to roll your eyes. Ruthie always drank too much at these things.
What the hell was her problem? She always acted like she knew something you didnât, like she held the keys to all the dirty little secrets in Kildare, and she loved dangling them in front of people just to watch them squirm.
âRuthie, I swear to Godââ you began, but she cut you off, her grin widening.
âOh, honey,â she cooed, her voice dripping with fake sympathy, âdonât get mad at me. Iâm just the messenger. You should really be talking to Rafe about this.â She took a step back, still smiling, and glanced over her shoulder. âHeâs around, you know. You can go find him yourself. See how cozy heâs gotten with her.â
You bit your tongue, jaw, forcing yourself to stay calm. She was trying to get under your skin, like the snake sheâd always been. You couldnât believe Top was lonely and horny enough to finally fall into her claws.
âThanks for the tip,â you gave her a tight lipped grimace, brushing past her, didnât try and wait for her reply.
You only caught glimpses of empty rooms along the way. You hadnât seen him since the break, and part of you didnât want to admit how much that messed you up. How much he messed you up. Your steps slowed as you neared the hall that led to the back of the house, the sound of voices filtering through the air. You recognized some, laughed at the drunken ramblings, until one voice cut through the noise. Rafeâs.
And then you heard hers. No fucking way.
You didnât stop. You couldnât. You told yourself you just needed to see him, just talk to him, tell him this break had gone on long enough, that you were done with the games. Thatâs when you heard it againâher laugh. It was light, flirtatious, the kind of laugh that made your stomach turn into a million different directions because you knew exactly what it meant.
She was there, with him.
You moved forward, the hallway barely lit as you reached the half-closed bathroom door. Your breath hitched, hands trembling as you peeked through the small crack, unable to stop yourself from looking.
There they were.
She was smiling, laughing softly at something heâd said, her fingers brushing through her hair as if she didnât have a care in the world. Your breath caught in your throat as you watched his hands move, tying the knot in her bikini with such gentle precision like heâd done it a thousand times. The kind of softness he used to have with you. And then he said it, his voice teasing, amused like this was some kind of inside joke between them.
"God, this is just landing right in my lap, isnât it?"
You froze.
He laughed quietly, his lips brushing against Sofiaâs shoulder as he tied the last knot, and the way he touched herâlike she was something to be savoredâsent a rush of pure, burning humiliation straight through your chest.
You stumbled back, your heart pounding in your ears as Rafeâs words repeated over and over in your head. Landing right in my lap. What the fuck was this?
Your heart clenched, vision blurring as what you were seeing slammed right into you. You backed away, your hand flying to your mouth to stop the sob from escaping. But it didnât help. Not even Ă little. The tears burned, and you turned quickly, practically running back through the house and out the door before anyone could see the humiliating mess you were becoming.
It was real. He moved on. In two fucking months.
Thatâs all it had taken for him to replace you. To be done with you. He was over you. Just like that.
After everything youâd been through together, after all the times you had to pull him out of his own darkness, after the nights spent in his arms when you thought you couldnât breathe because your whole family was goneâafter years of being his and him being yoursâhow the fuck could he move on when youâd been rotting away in self loathing for pushing him away?
Your head spun as you stumbled down the steps, out to the street where your car was parked. You couldnât breathe. Your breaths were coming out too fast, too shallow, and your hands were shaking so hard you had to press them against your knees to hold yourself up.
What the hell was wrong with you? You hadnât even had anything to drink.
But your stomach was rolling, twisting in knots so tight you could barely stand straight. You leaned against the side of your car, the cool metal grounding you to reality for a second before a wave of nausea hit, forcing you to double over and retch onto the pavement. Tears stung your eyes as you coughed, wiping your mouth with the back of your hand.
You felt dizzy, disgusted even, everything you thought you knew, everything you thought was yours, had been ripped out from under you.
Without a single warning. Not a text, not a stupid call, just pure indifference. No respect or regard for you. None of them. Everything youâd just seen replayed in your mindâRafe, her, the way he touched her like she meant something to him.
âLook whoâs still standing!â Topperâs voice. He was laughing as he strolled over, hands shoved in his pockets, that same carefree grin on his face that he always had at parties. âJesus, what did you have to drink? You look like youâve been hit by a truck.â
Normally, you might have had something to say back, maybe a fiery insult or a roll of your eyes. But right now, everything felt like too much. You couldnât say a word. You could barely breathe.
Your cousin stopped beside you, his grin dropping as he finally looked at you. âHey, whatâs wrong?â He leaned down, trying to catch your eyes. âYou good? You look kindaâ"
You cut him off, the question was heavy, like a lump lodged in your throat. âDid you know?â
He blinked, the confusion spreading across his face. âKnow what?â
You swallowed, your heart hammering in your chest as you forced the words out, your voice shaking. âAbout Rafe and Sofia.â
You hated saying her name.
Hated that youâd been forced to know it by heart. Topperâs smile dropped, his expression changing.
He didnât answer. He didnât have to, you knew him well enough to read his micro expressions. You clenched your fists, it felt like you were the only one in the island whoâd been let out of the secret.
Surely, your friends, your only family wouldâve told you something right? Itâs not like you were on a remote island away from them. Youâd spent the last month in New York, not in the fucking jungle. You visited occasionally. You were a call away.
âDid everyone fucking know?â
Topper exhaled slowly, rubbing the back of his neck. âLook, we didnât think it was serious. You know how it is with you twoâyouâve done this before. Played with other peopleâŠâ
Played with other people. Like you and Rafe were just some game, a revolving door of heartbreak and hookups. It didnât make sense. Youâd always known how it worked, understood how these things wentâsure, youâd had your minor flings, and heâd had his, but it was never real.
You stumbled back, feeling like you might collapse. âOh my God, Iâm going to be sick again.â
He reached out, obviously concerned since he hadnât seen you in this desperate state in years, âHey, hey, calm down. Look, itâs not like it means anything. Rafeâs justâheâs going through a lot with his dad dying, and he⊠heâs just messing around. You know how he gets.â
But the words did nothing to soothe you. They only made it worseâhow everyone knew. How theyâd all watched Rafe move on, while you were stuck, still reeling from the breakup, thinking heâd come back like he always did. And he was just out there, with her.
With someone else. You pressed a hand to your stomach, your head hurting. The idea of Sofia, of Rafe being with someone else in ways that only you knewâways that had always been yoursâmade you feel like you were being torn apart.
Topper was still talking, still trying to rationalize it, but his words were like static now, blending into the noise of the party behind you. âIt doesnât mean anything,â he was saying. âYou know how it goes. You always end up back together. Heâs just doing whatever to distract himself.â
That word. Distract himself. Like your entire relationship could be boiled down to thatâa series of distractions until you decided to come back to each other, to pick up the pieces and pretend everything was okay.
You could still remember the night your life changedâthe phone call, the horrible, gut-wrenching moment when you learned that your familyâs private plane had gone down. Your parents. Your sister. Gone. Just like that. And Rafe had been the one to pull you through it. He was the one who had held you as you cried so hard you thought you were going to die, who sat with you in silence when you couldnât bring yourself to speak, who stayed with you every single night because you were terrified to be alone in a haunted mansion that now felt like a mausoleum.
You had been seventeen, and losing them all at once had killed something inside of you. But he was there. He wasnât perfectâfar from itâbut he knew what it was like to grieve.
He knew loss. He understood. Because youâd been there for him two years earlier, when his mom lost her battle to cancer. You could still see the look in his eyes that dayâfourteen years old and already drowning in so much anger and sadness, like the world had ripped something essential out of him.
The way he cried at her funeral when he thought no one was watching, and youâd found him, sat beside him in the cold, letting him cry without saying a word. You hadnât started dating yet, hadnât crossed that line, but something had changed between you two in those moments.
A connection, a bond forged in shared pain, in the kind of trauma that no one else really got. Maybe that was why you were so obsessed with each other. Maybe it was fucked up, but you couldnât imagine anyone else understanding you the way Rafe did.
How could it all come down to this? To you standing here, feeling like the world was ending while he moved on, laughing and touching someone else like nothing you had ever been through mattered?
Was that it? Did that one moment, that one argument about Ward, erase everything youâd done for him?
All the times youâd been there, the way you had comforted him when he felt like his life was spiraling? You remembered exactly what youâd said a month after the funeral, when your boyfriend blamed everyone but Ward for his own death. "He wasnât a good person, baby. I know he was your dad, but you canât pretend like he didnât fuck you up."
You hadnât even said it to hurt him, not really. It was just the truth. Ward had been a terrible father, controlling and manipulative, and youâd spent years watching Rafe try to live up to some impossible standard, chasing his fatherâs approval like it would ever be enough. But that didnât make it easier for him to hear. You should have known better. You should have known how raw he was after losing his dad, how complicated his feelings were.
But instead, youâd been brutal. Honest, but brutal.
And now, two months later, here you wereâstaring at the empty street, wondering if youâd pushed him too far. If that one moment of honesty was enough to make him forget everything else. Now you were just the ex, the crazy one who didnât know when to keep her mouth shut.
âFuck, why did I say that?â you whispered to yourself, voice shaking. Why couldnât you have just let it go?
But then another clarity of anger took over you, pushing away the guilt that had been building inside. So youâd been too harsh about Ward. So youâd said what everyone else had been too scared to say. It wasnât like youâd been wrong. Ward had messed Rafe up.
Everyone knew it. He knew it, deep down.
You gritted your teeth, staring out at the dark street, the low hum of the party still buzzing faintly behind you. You were never going to get that picture out of your head. Like they hadnât just met, like you hadnât spent years learning how to calm Rafe when he spiraled, how to hold him together when he couldnât hold himself.
Your chest tightened again, a bitter taste rising in your throat.
You could still feel the weight of his head on your shoulder that night, years ago, when his mom passed. The silent sobs that shook his body, the way heâd held onto you. That was the real Rafeâthe one he hid from everyone else. The one who was lost and broken underneath all the anger. And youâd seen him, really seen him in ways no one else ever could. Not Sofia. Not anyone.
"Look, you're emotional, okay? I get it. Maybe it's that time of the month or something. You know how you always get when your hormones go crazy."
The words got to you, but not in the way he probably thought they would. At first, it pissed you off, like it always did when people tried to downplay your emotions. Everyone always said you felt too much. That you were out of control.
But thenâŠ
You stopped moving, blinking rapidly as his words spiraled around in your brain. âTime of the monthâ, he'd said.
Your heart started doing summersaults, your stomach dropping as the idea settled in. You grabbed your phone, hands trembling like leaves as you opened the calendar app. You scrolled, trying to think, trying to remember when youïżœïżœïżœd lastâŠfuck.
You hadnât had your period in⊠so long.
Almost two months. No. No, no, no. This couldnât be happening. It had to be some kind of fucked up joke.
You felt light-headed as you reached for your car again, your body shaking so badly you could barely stand against the door. "Shit."
How could you not have noticed?
Topper noticed the change in you instantly, his brow furrowing. "Whatâs wrong with you?" he asked, his tone softening a little. "You okay?"
You couldnât even form a sentence. Your brain was too full of what-ifs. Two months late.
You hadn't even thought about it until nowâeverything had taken so much space in your head that you hadn't noticed the most obvious sign. This wasnât possible. Your hand flew to your stomach, almost instinctively. You had no idea what to do with the panic creeping up your throat.
âShit,â You hissed, this time louder, trying to push the growing dread down. But it wouldn't go away.
He was still staring at you, âWhat? Whatâs going on? Youâre freaking me out.â
But you were already backing away, shaking your head, âIâI need to go,â You mumbled, barely hearing yourself.
Your cousin moved quickly to block your path as you tried to make your way toward the door. That kind of protective streak only made you want to shove past him even more.
"Youâre not driving in this state." he warned you, voice firm, his hands up like he was trying to physically stop you.
You just glared at him, âFucking watch me.â
He didnât budge. "You get in that car and I'm calling Rafe," he said, sounding dead serious.
You couldnât believe it. Your head was already spinning, and he was trying to guilt-trip you like this was some kind of helpful thing to do? You threw your hands up in frustration, voice rising, cracking. "Heâs too busy fucking Sofia. Knock yourself out."
The words felt like venom in your mouth, the bitterness rolling off your tongue. You didnât care how harsh they sounded. You didnât care about anything anymore except getting away from this suffocating stupid place. Before he could say anything else, you made your move. You pushed past him with all your strength, chest hurting with the urge to feel something other than this suffocating mess of emotions and confusion.
Your hands shook as you fumbled for your keys. You managed to unlock the door, sliding into the driverâs seat, the cool leather biting into your skin.
You needed to think. But all you could think about was that one, terrifying realization: you might be pregnant.
Your breath hitched, terror swirling around your chest. The calendar app was still open on your phone, the dates staring back at you like a flashing red warning sign, daring you to confront the truth youâd been ignoring. Two months. Two months without a period. And you hadnât even noticed. You pressed a hand to your stomach again, heart pounding as if it was trying to escape your chest. This couldnât be happening. Not now. Not like this.
You werenât thinking clearlyâshit, you werenât thinking at all, but you couldnât stay here. Not with Topper trying to baby you, not with him out there, living his best life like you didnât even exist.
You turned the key, the engine roaring to life, and just as you gripped the wheel, ready to peel out of the driveway, Topper bolted in front of the car, planting himself right there like some kind of human roadblock. Fucking idiot. His arms were stretched out wide, like he could somehow stop you by sheer willpower.
âYouâre not doing this, I swear to God, youâre not!â he yelled, his voice frantic, echoing off the dark street. He looked panicked, pleading even, like he was convinced youâd actually go through with it.
You gritted your teeth, eyes narrowing on him through the windshield. âTop, I swear, you have three seconds before I run you over.â
âAre you serious right now?â he yelled, his voice cracking with disbelief. But he didnât move. âYou think Iâm letting you drive like this? Youâre out of your fuckinâ mind!â
Your fingers gripping the wheel so hard it hurt. You werenât bluffing. You were too wound up, too out of control. The only thing keeping you from flooring him was the fact that, deep down, you knew your cousin didnât deserve it.
You just needed to get out of here.
âMove!â you screamed, âIâm not jokingâ, Topper. Get the fuck out of my way!â
His face twisted with frustration as he looked over his shoulder, something catching his attention. He started waving, yelling at someone, his voice cutting through the night, âRafe! Dude, get over here!â
Your brain stopped. It was like everything had been sucked out of you. Your hands froze on the wheel, your entire body locking up as you looked to your right and saw himâRafe. Right there in the yard.
And she was with him. He had his arm draped around her casually, like she belonged there.
Like he belonged there, just standing in the open, so stupidly comfortable in his new life. His head turned when he heard Topper call out, and your eyes locked for a less than a second. A moment too long. A moment that broke something inside you.
While Topper was distracted, his attention on Rafe, you made your move. You slammed your foot on the gas, tires screeching as the car lurched forward, swerving just enough to dodge Topperâs stunned figure. You heard him yell after you, but his voice faded into the background noise as you sped away.
You didnât look back. Not at Top, not at Rafe.
The only thing you could hear was the sound of your own heartbeat pounding in your ears, drowning out everything else. You hated this. Hated that you were crying. Hated that youâd let yourself get to this point.
âGod, what is wrong with me?â you muttered, your voice quavering as the words tumbled out. âWhy the fuck am I crying over him? I shouldnât be crying over him.â You slammed your palm against the steering wheel, angry, disgusted with yourself.
Youâd told yourself you were stronger than thisâthat after everything youâd been through, you didnât need him or anyone else. But here you were, falling apart like some pathetic excuse of a mess because of him. Because he had always been there, hadnât he? After the crash, after you lost everything, he was the one constant, the one person who kept you from completely losing it. Youâd relied on him so much. Too much.
âFuck,â you hissed, tears streaming down your face. Your throat burned as the memories came flooding back, memories of all the nights youâd spent together, of him holding you while you cried yourself to sleep, of the way heâd pulled you out of the gloom when you thought youâd never get back up again. You thought heâd always be that person for you, the one who understood your broken pieces because he had his own. Youâd always fit together perfectly.
You pulled into the parking lot of the nearest drugstore, your hands still shaking as you put the car in park. The tears had dried up on the drive over, replaced by a cold determination. You didnât want to be here. Didnât want to even think about what you were about to do.
The moment you stepped out of your car and into the harsh fluorescent lighting of the drugstore, you felt completely out of placeâlike a stranger in your own skin. You hadnât even thought about how ridiculous you mustâve looked until you caught your reflection in one of the storeâs glass windows. Your hair, still perfect from earlier, framed your face in soft waves, and your makeup was flawless, despite the crying. The designer dress you were wearingâsleek, red, and worth more than half the shit in this storeâwith its sticky floors and white lights, it made you feel like an alien. Like you didnât belong.
You caught the eyes of a couple of people loitering outside the entrance as you walked in, their stares lingering a little too long, murmuring to each other behind smirks. You knew they were talking about you. They always did, kook queen, overdressed, out of touch, bitch, whatever they wanted to call you.
The sliding doors let out a grating beep as you entered, and the air inside was stale and heavy, reeking of floor cleaner and cheap perfume. You adjusted your grip on your purse, strutting past the aisles with your head high even though everything inside you felt like it was falling apart.
You always did thisâdressed to kill, head up, like armor. But there was no real glamour in buying pregnancy tests from some random pharmacy in the middle of the night. No way to mask the deep, growing hysteria in your bones.
The girl behind the register clocked you the second you stepped up to the counter, her eyes dragging over your like she couldnât quite believe what she was seeing. You could almost hear her thoughts: What the hell is someone like you doing here?
You didnât even look at her. You just wanted to pay and leave without a scene. But of course, people always found a way to make things worse. She hesitated before scanning the tests, looking like she might say something. For her own good, you prayed she didnât.
You threw the money on the counter before she could open her mouth, two crisp hundreds on top of the total. The cash hit the counter with a sharp thwap and you gave her the bitchiest look you could muster. âTake it. Keep your fucking mouth shut.â
She swallowed hard, her hand trembling as she slid the bills into the register. You didnât care that she was young or nervous. You werenât here to make friends. You werenât here for anyoneâs sympathy. The extra money would make sure she didnât talk, that was all that mattered.
You walked out, your heels clicking against the linoleum, head high, even though every nerve in your body screamed for you to disappear. You slid into your truck, slamming the door shut, the silence finally hitting you. For all the designer clothes, the makeup, the moneyânone of it meant shit right now. You felt so small. So scared. Terribly lonely.
You sat there for what felt like forever, staring at the stupid bag in the passenger seat like it had the power to ruin your whole lifeâwhich, to be fair, it kind of did. You didnât know what the fuck you were going to do. Not about any of it.
Your foot tapped nervously against the floor mat, the sound too loud in the quiet car. The bag crinkled as you glanced at it again, your stomach twisting all over again. A bunch of pregnancy tests. How had it come to this?
Rafe. You squeezed your eyes shut, willing yourself not to think about him, not to picture his face when he found out. If he found out. Shit, what the hell was he going to do? He was with Sofia now, right? So was this going to ruin his life too? Did he even deserve to know?
It was probably nothing, you told yourself. Maybe the separation anxiety had gotten to you. Maybe your body was just fucked up from all the stress. Maybe your period was just late because youâd been so all over the place lately. There could be a million reasons. You didnât even want to think about what would happen if it wasnât nothing.
You didnât want to cry anymore. Not after all of this. Not over Rafe. Not over your life turning into some fucking soap opera you didnât even want to be a part of.
The second you were inside your house, the walls closed in around you. Your perfectly decorated placeâthe one youâd spent so much time making into a refuge, an escapeâit didnât feel like that anymore. Every designer pillow, every carefully chosen piece of art, mocking you.
Your phone buzzed in your bag, you reached for it. Of course, it was Rafe.
âI donât know what the fuck that was but save the fucking dramatics, okay?â
The nerve. The fucking nerve of him to act like he was the center of your universe, acting like you were some inconvenience. Months of silence and this was the first thing he decided to text you? Knowing how much you despised when people called you a drama queen? Fucking piece of shit.
Your fingers hovered over the screen, a thousand different responses running through your mind. You wanted to tell him to shove something up his ass. But you did the only thing that felt right in that moment.
You blocked him. You stared at your phone, half expecting it to buzz again, half dreading that it wouldnât. It was done. You cut him off, at least in that tiny, virtual way. You sat there for a minute, gripping the phone, trying to remember how to breathe.
This was supposed to feel empowering, right? You told yourself it would. That cutting him out would help you get back some control. But your mind wouldnât settle. Those damn pregnancy tests were sitting in the bag next to you.
You were tired.
Exhausted in a way that had nothing to do with how late it was or how emotionally spent you were. You kicked off your heels, letting them clatter against the hardwood floor as you sank into the plush couch. Your house felt cold and unwelcoming tonight. Like a showroom. No comfort to be found. Not here, not in the muted tones of beige and white. Not in the sleek lines of furniture that were supposed to exude elegance and sophistication.
Maybe tomorrow youâd feel differently.
Maybe youâd wake up with a clear head, ready to take the stupid tests. Maybe youâd be strong again like youâd been so many times before.
Tonight, you were just tired. You leaned back against the cushions, closing your eyes for a moment, willing the noise in your head to quiet down. Sleep. Thatâs what you needed. Just a few hours to clear your mind, and in the morning, youâd deal with everything.
All of this would go away.
TAGLIST: @maybankslover @october-baby25 @haruvalentine4321 @hopelesslydevoted2paige @rafebb
@rafesbbyy @whytheylosttheirminds @astarlights @bruher @nosebeers @carrerascameron @serrendiipty @sunny1616
@yootvi @ditzyzombiesblog @psychocitylights @maibelitaaura @kiiyomei
@stoned-writer @justafangirls-blog-deactivated2 @starkeygirlposts @enjoymyloves @ijustwanttoreadlols
@icaqttt
#rafe cameron#rafe cameron x reader#rafe cameron x you#rafe cameron fanfiction#rafe cameron au#rafe fic#rafe x reader#rafe cameron angst#toxic!rafe#toxic!reader#angst#itneverendshere worksâš#rafe cameron series#rafe cameron outer banks#eventual smut#eventual fluff#just angst now#rafe cameron x kook!reader#rafe cameron x female reader#rafe cameron x y/n#rafe cameron obx#obx 4#obx rafe cameron#rafe x sofia
4K notes
·
View notes
Text
promise
{mlb!megumi fushiguro x f!reader}
summary: halloween calls for pumpkin carving, cliche horror movies, and most importantly, a penthouse halloween partyâ only the best of the best invited amongst the world of professional athletes and teams, and you looking forward to this event and giddy as you stood in the ambiance of fake spiderwebs and skeletonsâŠ. but megumi is tested. patience running thin when every single man there seemed to track you like a dog, and you thrown off when a certain megumi admirer crosses the line with her absurd words and phrasing⊠unbeknownst to you that she had it out for you, planning schemes to get what she wants and stopping at nothing to get itâ and what she wants being something that already belonged to you⊠megumi fushiguro.
warnings: MDNI. FLUUUFFF, angst, JEALOUSYYY YEESH, mentions of alcohol and drinking, mentions of inebriation, afab!reader, cursing, use of y/n, pet names, penthouse party, FERAL SMUUTT, dom reader AND dom megumi HEEE, p in v sex, unprotected sex (wrap it yâall), bondage, creampie, scary halloween sex, megumi is COOCKOO IN THE COCONUTS, reader is bratty, megumi is a jealous freak, all characters are aged up.
word count: 19.8k
authors note: OKAAAYYY MLB!MEGUMI FOOOUURRR AAAHHH THIS IS CRAZZZYYY !! LETS ALL COME TOGETHER AND PRAAYYY for what yâall are about to read, and i hope you all LOVEE ITT AND THIRST WITHH MEEE !!! UGH this was an absolute privilege to write for you all and i can only hope once again that i delivered !! <333 I LOVE YOU SOOOO SO MUCH THANK YOU FOR ALL OF YOUR LOVE AND SUPPORT !! <333 MWAAAHHH !!
i highly advise you to read the other parts of this series or else you wonât be able to understand some of the storyline and references :( you can find my mlb!megumi fushiguro masterlist here!
âwhatâs that baby.â
you leaned away from the mirror and looked at megumi, him sat patiently and content on the edge of the tub as he watched you do your makeup.
âthis?â you held up your mascara wand and he nodded. âmascara gumi! it goes on my lashes and helps them look preeettyyy.â
you looked to the mirror and leaned over the sink again, dipping the mascara wand in the tube, muttering. âor at least i hope it doesâŠâ
megumi huffed a breath of amused air through his nose. âit does.â
you grinned, stepping away from the sink and walking over to him as you extended an arm, offering the little wand.
âwanna help mee?â
he pinched his brows momentarily before reaching and taking it from your waiting hand, mumbling. âi donât know how baby⊠i donât wanna poke your eye.â
you laughed a little and perched yourself up on his lap gently, megumi readjusting so youâd be comfortable and placing a cold hand on your thigh.
âyou wonât gumi! iâll show you lookââ
you took the wand back from him and raised the bristle to your eye, sliding it up slowly against your lash as megumi focused his gaze on what you were doing, face so serious that it made you giggle.
âhere! you try.â you smiled sweetly, passing it back to him as you excitedly waited for him to copy what you did.
he brought the bristle to your other eye, fingers coming up to gently hold your jaw and keep you in place as he brought up the wand, delicately running the mascara over your lashes with precision.
you stared at him, the way his deep blue eyes tracked his own movements so carefully with furrowed eyebrows as you could tell he was trying his hardest to stay away from your actual eyeball, you finding it difficult to stay still and not swoon over his striking features that never failed to hinder your normal brainy functionsâ his face close to yours.
âgumi.â
âhm?â
âyour lashes are so beautiful.â
the side of his lip curled up in amusement.
âtheyâre.. eyelashes.â
âlucious eyelashes my godâŠâ you murmured as he moved the bristles away from you and lowered his hand. âtheyâre so long and sexy.â
he snorted and lifted his hand to give you back the wand, you happily taking it as he then mushed your cheeks together with his fingers and kissed your puckered lips.
âyou almost ready.â
âyes!â you responded, standing from his lap and walking over to the sink to take a look at his work, giving him a cheeky thumbs up at the results with a cute smile before dipping the bristles back in the shiny gold tube, coating a bit more of the product on your lash for a fuller look.
halloween was one of your most favorite holidays of the year, right next to valentineâs day and megumiâs birthday as the overall feel of horror, carved pumpkins, and cheesy gore just did something to you that made you sickeningly giddy and riled up whenever you and megumi participated in fall activities each year.
and today was just thatâ you and your boyfriend getting ready (well mostly you) for a halloween party taking place just about an hour from now, going as a couples costume that consisted of you dressed up as a slutty cupid and him one of your victims, his simple white long sleeved button up and black pants all it was since you didnât have the heart to make him wear an actual costume, knowing he would probably be embarrassed by it and keep the fact from you.
but the event you were attending wasnât just any halloween party.
it was the fucking halloween party for any professional athlete across the globe, exclusive as hell, and teams from literally everywhere invited as long as they were the best of the best and honed in several winning titles under their beltsâ megumi and his team being no exception as they got invited every single year with the event manager practically begging megumi and yuji in particular to attend, but megumi always missing out every year due to his general dislike for parties.
but you loved parties. and he knew that.
and seeing how upset you got last year not being able to go because one of your professors decided to be a dick and assign an exam the day of halloweenâ
megumi silently made sure that this year you both would be able to go, regardless of what he thought about parties so as long as you were there.
âi just need to put on my corset and wings.â you screwed the mascara tube shut. âiâll be back!ââ
âyouâre not changing in here?â he asked confusedly.
ââŠno.â
âwhy not.â
âbecause i need privacy gumi.â
he gave you a deadpanned look. âiâve seen you naked baby.â
a fiery pink blush rose to your cheeks as you started stiffly side stepping closer to the door.
âokay?â you pursed your lips. âwater is wet. the sky is blue. iâm horny because of your costumeââ
megumi laughed loudly as your voice trailed off down the hall, you skipping into his room and throwing your top off over your head so you could put on your cherry red corset, it already fucking suffocating you and you hadnât even tied the laces yet as you quickly slipped on your white thigh high socks and little wings, running down the hall again back to the restroom.
âoh my god i canât breatheââ
âjesus christ.â
âwhat?!â you froze and looked down at your costume. âwhat does it look bad? do i look trashy? do i look stupidââ
âno baby no.â megumi spoke gently, embarrassed that he accidentally let his reaction slip. âsâcute. i like it.â
you smiled sweetly, nodding and turning to look at the mirror to lace up your corsetâ each tug and pull from your hands only pushing your godly tits further up and up and up until megumi had to grip the sides of the tub to keep himself from grabbing you and taking your white mini skirt off, your soft tits now sitting pretty and puffy at the top of your corset with a tied lacey bow.
you breathed in deeply as you set your hands on your hips, barely even having room to properly exhale as you tried to get yourself accustomed to it.
âiâm gonna die.â
megumi chuckled and stood, walking over to you and settling his long arms around your waist, pulling you in.
âloosen it a little baby.â he leaned to the side to look at your skirt, one hand coming down to tug at it. âis this how short it is?â
âyup!â you cheekily grinned, pecking his rosy cheek. âiâm going as a little slut.â
he playfully rolled his eyes and smoothed his hands over the material of your corset, eyes wanting to lock themselves straight with your tits again but refraining himself from doing so.
âand halloween is like my religion gumi.â you propped your chin up on his chest. âitâd be a disgrace if i loosened up my corset like a freaking loser.â
megumi laughed, his pearly smile making your heart flutter as you stood up on your tippy toes and kissed him.
âkay, you ready?â
he looked at you confusedly. âfor what?â
âfor the lipstick kisses!â you stepped away from his arms and dug into your makeup bag on the counter. âitâs part of your costume baby itâs like i made you fall in love but with me âcause iâm cupid and i shot you with an arrow and now you love me and stuffâŠâ
megumi watched you pull out your red lipstick and unscrew the top, sliding the end of it over your lips carefully before pressing them into a thin line and spreading the product around, leaning back from the mirror.
you turned to him. âready ready?â
he nodded and let you tug him down by his collar, you undoing a few buttons from the top so his chest would show as you moved and pressed a gentle but solid kiss to his collarbone.
and megumi took note of then that you never really had to do anything for him to get riled up, because you being you and with each little kiss that trailed up his neck and left behind scattered red lipstick marks, had him blushing furiously and looking to the side, a particular peck to the edge of his adamâs apple causing him to harshly suck in a breath through his nose.
megumi loved halloween.
you finished with a kiss to his jaw, pulling back and eyes lighting up at the sight of him covered in your red smooches, you gently nudging him to look in the mirror.
âyou look so cuuutee guumiii!â you gushed, a silly smile on your face as you admired your work and pointed at him funnily through the mirror, but faltering and head snapping in his direction once you saw his blank blinking eyes.
âwhat?â you asked softly, brows furrowed in concern. âare you okay? do you not like it? i couldâ i could take it offââ
you went to reach for the makeup wipes in your bag until megumi caught your wrist and yanked you forward, dropping his face into your breasts and biting down on a puffy tit as you gasped.
âgumi!â you laughed, hands pushing at his chest as he dragged a long wet stripe up from your boob to the side of your neck. ânot right now!â
âwhy not.â he mumbled, pulling your waist in again and biting down on the side of your neck, his mouth traveling back to your tits. âiâll be fast.â
your cheeks grew hot as he gnawed and bit over your boobs, your body melting with each lick and little by little giving in to him as you felt yourself dazedly lean forward into his chest.
but the party.
âwâ wonât we be late?â you asked softly, thighs clamping together at the way he slipped his hand up your skirt to grope your ass.
âjust a little pretty babyâŠâ he murmured against your skin, fingers slowly creeping under your panties. âwanna feel you around myââ
a blaring chime rang through the bathroom, your phone vibrating against the counter as you tried to pull away from megumi and retrieve it.
âmyâ baby my phoneââ
âleave it.â
âbut itâs my best friendââ
you extended a strained arm, outstretched fingers clawing to grab at your phone as he continued to assault your neck and tits, almost knocking it off the counter instead as you alternately decided to put your phone on speaker, tapping your finger on the screen to answer the call with your frame still utterly caged in megumiâs arms.
âhelââ
ây/n oh my god please help me!â
your eyebrows furrowed in concern while you literally wrestled with your boyfriend at this point to let you go, him snickering and biting down harder on your skin as you giggled.
âwhatâ what happened?â
âi canât lace up my costumeee!â she whined. âare you at megumiâs place still?! yuji doesnât know how to do it he almost snapped the ribbon twice and i canât see because itâs on my back and weâre gonna be fucking lateââ
you gasped. âoh noâ yes! yes i am hurry so i can help youââ
âperfect iâm already at the doorââ
megumi huffed, rolling his eyes as he straightened up and softly let you go, you looking up at him with apologetic eyes and reaching up to caress his cheek.
âiâm sorry gumi⊠we can have sex when we get back!â
âyou canâ what?!â your girl friend shrieked over the phone, both of megumiâs hands slapping over your mouth with blushing cheeks. âyou freaks open the damn door!â
âmâsorry mâsorry mâsorry!ââ
megumi laughed and kissed your forehead, dropping his hands and turning to leave the bathroom to get the door as your girl friend still yelled over the other lineâ a combination of what you had said and about her corset until you actually heard her in person down the hallway through the living room.
ây/n help me please dear godâ move megumiââ
fast clicking heels echoed down the hall until they reached you, your best friend heaving as she slumped against the door frame with a trail of dark blue ribbon behind her, the corset of her slutty police officer costume loose around her body as she clutched it against herself.
âiâm so scared the ribbon is gonna snap.â she breathed out. âyuji pulled it so fucking hard i heard a ripââ
âis it okay?!â
yuji ran into the bathroom as soon as you ushered her in and gently turned her around, inspecting the ribbon.
âbabe iâm sorry iâm so sorry please forgive meââ
âwhy did you keep tightening it when i told you to stop?â your girl friend stressed, holding onto the edge of the counter as you proceeded to lace up her corset.
âi donât know iâm stupid iâm sorryââ
âitâs fineââ
âno i need the death penalty right nowââ
megumi appeared behind yuji then with a cold look on his face, arms crossed as he leaned against the hallway wall and listened to the commotion happening in his own fucking apartment that annoyingly hindered the moment he was having with you minutes prior.
âyou guys the ribbon is okay.â you began, quickly fastening it through various loops and crosses. âthere was a little tear in it but not that bad! it shouldnât give out.â
they both breathed out a dramatic sigh of relief and you giggled at that, finishing up the lacing with a cute bow at the bottom that matched yours and stepping back, your girl friend happily looking at the ribbon through the mirror then before throwing her arms around your neck and giving you a big kiss on the cheek.
âi love you thank you!â
âmhm!â you sweetly responded, looking over and readjusting the rest of her costume as she started pinning down her little police officer hat, yuji guiltily sulking in the back and megumi disappearing off somewhere.
âbabe i told you itâs okay!â your best friend laughed, turning around to ruffle up his pink hair. âit didnât rip that much and you didnât mean to at all either.â
he nodded and kissed her cheek, running a hand up and down her side.
âi know i just feel bad⊠i wouldâve fucked up your costume.â
she shrugged, running her hands over his white ribbed tank top. âand we wouldâve figured something else out! i was already thinking of using my shoe laces instead.â
you laughed a bit, the sight of yuji wearing bright orange prison pants with his top a funny one as your best friend reached into the back pocket of her shorts to pull out her phone, you fixing over the straps of your little cupid wings in the mirror.
âiâm gonna down every single fucking fruity drink i see.â you spoke excitedly. âoh! you guys do they still do the bottle sparkler drinks you told me about? the ones they bring out and light on fire andââ
âyeaahhh!â yuji exclaimed. âthey do holy fuck iâm getting in line for that i donât care if i black out drunk you only live onceââ
your girl friends sudden gasp made you both jump and look at her.
âoh my godââ she frantically scrolled through her phone. âoh my god we have to go we have to goââ
âwhat?!â you peered over her shoulder to try and look at her screen. âwhy?! what happened whatâ are we too lateââ
she spun around and grabbed your shoulders. âtheâ the nfl cheerleaders! they showed up y/n the fucking cheerleadersââ
âoh my god!â you quickly shoved your scattered about makeup into your bag and flung your curler and straightener under the sink. âwe have to go we have to go we need to butter our way in this is our chance to be one of themââ
âoh my god oh my godââ she hurriedly pinned her toy badge to her chest before snatching yujiâs hand and running out of the bathroom, yelling from down the hall. âweâll meet you guys there y/n! call me as soon as you park!â
âokay!â you called back, megumi soon after silently appearing with your cherry red mary jane pumpsâ dangling loosely from his fingers.
âoh my goodness thank you gumi i couldnât find those!â you tumbled out quickly, following his lead when he guided you to sit down on the edge of the tub, him getting down on a knee and lifting your ankle up to slip and strap your heels on for you.
âdid you hear?â you grinned, bouncing in your spot. âthe nfl cheerleaders showed up.â
he chuckled lowly. âi did baby. i heard all the way from my room.â
you bit down on your bottom lip to suppress a squeal, megumi gently setting down one ankle and lifting the other.
âwould you still love me if i was a cheerleader for the nfl.â
he snorted. âyes. why wouldnât i?â
âbecause iâm betraying the mlb.â you pouted, him finished now and looking up at you with a tiny smile. âbut itâs not my fault you guys donât have cheerleaders! i wouldâve tried out a long time ago if you didâŠâ
he looked at you amusedly before kissing your lips and standing, helping you up on your heels with a hand and leading you out of the bathroom over to the living room.
âwould you still love me if i was in football instead of baseball?â he asked, grabbing his keys from the counter and leaning down to tie his shoes.
you gave him a bewildered look.
âgumi iâd still love you even if you killed people for a living.â you mumbled. âor if you had a criminal record. or if you committed arson for fun. or even if you straight up didnât love me back iâd probably stalk youââ
megumi laughed loudly and stood back up, shaking his head and pinching your little cheek at your last comment before opening the front door and stepping out with you.
âi wouldnât mind that.â
you giggled. âyou wouldnât?â
he shook his head, a sly smile spreading across his face.
âiâd do worse.â
the only thing you all really knew about the whereabouts of the party, was that it was annually hosted at a penthouse in the city by an event manager who was obsessed with professional sports teams, but the details of exactly whoâs penthouse was unknown⊠only that it was the biggest social event of the year with open bars and smoke machines and cocktail waitresses at every cornerâ any player who was someone in their respective sport always in attendance.
you had heard about it many times before through yuji and your best friend before you had officially met megumi, you every year wanting to go so bad but far too intimidated by the type of crowd that it was to actually show up, doomed to watch their stories on social media and the cheerleaders you followed having the time of their lives doing shots from a cut in half bamboo pole with various others in a lineâ moping around in your room with nothing better to do.
but now you were eternally grateful that you finally got to go with none other than the person you loved most in your life, not wanting it any other way as megumi contently listened to you excitedly ramble and look through social media stories of the players already there in his passenger seat, interlaced fingers on the center console as he occasionally raised and kissed the back of your hand.
and upon arriving at the penthouse and leaving your vehicles at the parking garage, all of you were amazed to see that there was a line wrapped around the fucking building and down the street as you walked up, you nervous now for some reason while skipping through the entire line and going towards the security guard inside the lobby.
and youâve always admired and taken pride in the fact that megumi was the best at his sport and was recognized immensely for it despite his indifferent stoic image⊠but even more so now as the security guard didnât even have to listen to yuji say who they were as he stepped to the side and pointed down the hall.
âlast elevator to your left, button goes straight up. have a great night.â
you all thanked him and walked over to the elevator, piling in and pressing the golden lit button to the top floor before the doors gradually slid closed.
âif the bamboo shots already happened iâm gonna be pissed.â you mumbled, yuji and your best friend groaning in agreement as they chatted and watched the number in the elevator screen rise to thirty five and still going.
âif the bar runs out of those tiki cocktail mugs before we get there iâm actually gonna start fighting with the bartenders this timeââ
âno youâre not.â your best friend cut yuji off as she laughed, lightly slapping his shoulder and wrapping her arms around his torso after.
you felt megumi nudge you and you looked, his head coming down and placing his lips to the side of your ear.
âtry not to lose me baby.â he murmured. âcall me if you do please. or look for yujiâs stupid bright pants.â
âhey!â he whined. âi heard thatâŠâ
you giggled hard and nodded, standing on your tippy toes to give him a cute kiss on the cheek.
âkay gumi!â
and the doors slid open just then, music blasting through and startling you and megumi as he grabbed your hand to interlock your fingers, your eyes shining like constellations at the massive scene before you as you all stepped insideâ the entire penthouse lit in a dark purple neon hue with hanging skeletons and bats on the walls, fake spiderwebs hung at every corner and yellow caution tape strewn about, absolutely everyone dressed up and not a single one in regular attire as you navigated through the crowd, foggy air over the floor that sweeped and swayed with every movement.
and the walls were tall and humongous, a particular side playing a montage of various teams and specific playersâ best moments of their season on a projector screen, your eyes immediately focusing to see if you could spot megumi in any of the flashing videos.
a cocktail waitress passed by with a tray of shots then, multiple hands coming from the crowd to take as your group did as well and downed them back, megumi scrunching up his face in distaste as he coughed into his elbow and put the shot glass back on the tray, you rubbing a comforting hand over his back.
âloooser!â your best friend teased and pointed at him, megumi scowling and slapping her hand away from his face before swinging an arm around your hip.
âno that shit was actually nasty..â you gagged, the rest of you following suit and placing the shot glasses back on the tray before the cocktail waitress disappeared somewhere in the crowd, yuji nodding in agreement.
âthatâs why i hog the tiki bar every yearâ oh shit!ââ he quickly whipped his head around with wide eyes. âbabe babe my tiki mug where the fuck is the tiki bar?!â
âthe fire! the fire!â your girl friend pointed up ahead, all of you turning your heads to see a crowded bar adorned with hibiscus flowers and actual lit torches, multiple bartenders behind the counter booked and busy as they mixed alcohols and shook their barrel shakers to serve drinks.
âoh thereâs actually fire...â megumi mumbled. âindoors.â
you gasped. âoh my god gumi letâs go letâs go!â you grabbed his wrist with two hands and gently tugged him forward, a beaming smile on your face. âi want a tiki mug too!â
he laughed a little, nodding as you all started walking over to the bar, yuji literally shoving his way through to the front until the upper half of his body was toppled over the counter with flat palms on the surface.
âtiki mug!â he breathed out to the bartenders. âtiki mug is there still tiki mugs?!â
âitadori!â one of them greeted with a smile, his eyes flickering over to megumi. âand fushiguro?! iâve never seen you at one of these! ever!â
megumiâs expression read nothing as he only nodded curtly, yuji impatiently waiting for the bartender to answer his question as he looked like he was about to rip his hair out, your best friend laughing.
âcongrats on winning the world series last year!â he spoke again before reaching under the bar. âand for the mlb, of course i have tiki mugs!â
âoh thank god thank you i love you mister bartender!â yuji slumped against the counter with a hand over his heart.
âso what drink with it?â he lined up four tiki mugs on the bar. âi could do a piñacolada, blue hawaii, tropical bay breezeââ
âoh! could i do a blue hawaii please?â you asked politely, the bartender nodding and taking the rest of your orders before quickly getting to work and mixing alcohols together.
âmegumi iâll take your mug if you donât want it!â yuji mentioned hopefully, tail basically wagging like a little dog.
âiâm giving it to y/n.â
âfuck!â
you giggled and patted his shoulder. âitâs okay! you can have it. just let me drink his drink first though heh.â
âoh thank you!â yuji threw his arms around your neck and you stumbled back, megumi quickly placing his hands on your waist to stabilize you. âyou donât understand every year i come to this damn party and thereâs never tiki mugs iâve been savedââ
âbabe youâre not letting her breathe get off!â your girl friend laughed, tugging at his ribbed tank before he released you and spun around, engulfing her instead.
âsorry! arrest me!â
âyu!â
âcuff me but the fuzzy pink ones i like thoseââ
âyouâre disgusting.â megumi mumbled.
your girl friend shot him a glare.
âsays the one who fucks my best friend every night and makes her say the most outrageous thingsââ
you screamed and covered your reddening horrified face, megumi shutting up instantly with wide eyes and pink cheeks as yuji and your girl friend reeled over and cackled.
âblue hawaii! tropical bay breeze! rum punch! bahama mama!â
each tiki mug was stacked onto the bar with a thud after every callâ full and foamy with colorful liquid and little umbrella picks adorning them as they were pushed towards you, yuji profusely thanking the nice bartender and almost jumping over the counter too as he grabbed his mug.
you took a sip of your drink and lit up, immediately slurping the rest of your blue hawaii and downing it like itâs fucking water and not straight up alcohol as megumi watched you with shocked amused eyes.
âyou like it baby?â he softly asked, taking tiny sips of his rum punch and surprisingly liking it, offering it out to you. âyou wanna try mine?â
you swallowed a big gulp and quickly nodded. âyes! please gumi.â
you both switched drinks, trying each others and you loving his even more as megumi gently turned you around and wrapped his unoccupied arm over your tummy, tugging your back to rest against his front as you chatted with your friends and tried to hear each other over the loud music (and megumi trying to ignore the stares you got from random weird men..), your eyes occasionally drifting over the crowd and spotting several different star players.
most consisted of the nfl, but there were a good amount from the nba and other teams from the mlbâ even volleyball and hockey as you recognized some of their faces from reruns that played on your tv or the highlights you saw through your social media platforms, you a bit star struck when you saw particular ones your were a fan of casually walk by the tiki bar next to you.
you reached a hand out and tapped your girl friend.
âhave you seen the cheerleaders yet?!â you yelled over the music, shoulders slumping when she sadly shook her head no.
âiâm gonna actually start crying in front of all of these people if i donât see at least one.â she stressed. âwe need to start looking in the crowdââ
a sudden jolt stumbled you and megumi forward, the both of you craning your heads around.
âiâm so sorry!â a girl gasped. âi didnât see whereââ
she oddly stopped, megumi barely even sparing her a glance as he just nodded at her apology and turned back around to face the other way, but you still watching the way she stared at megumi with big shocked eyes and slightly parted mouth.
similar to the way you did when you first saw him.
but she continued to look at him, her eyes flickering to yours then and⊠hardening before she reluctantly spun the other way and moved through the crowd until you couldnât see her blonde hair anymore.
and you figured she couldâve just been a fan of megumiâs and was simply too starstruck to say anything⊠but the weird feeling in your gut had you gnawing at the bottom of your lip as you turned to face the other way again.
âstrange..â your best friend mumbled, your eyes snapping to hers.
âyou noticed that too?â
âuh huh.â her gaze scanned the main dance floor. âdonât think iâve ever seen her before either.â
you craned your neck to look up at your boyfriend.
âhave you gumi?â
he looked down, brows furrowing.
âhave i what.â
âseen her?â you nudged your head to the crowd. âthe girl that bumped into us?â
âwho?â
you laughed. âthe girlâ nevermind. itâs okay!â
he smiled softly, leaning down to peck your lips before continuing to sip on his little blue hawaii as he caressed his hand over your side, his arm still snug around your torso.
âis everybody having a good night or what?!â
your gazes shifted to the dj booth up ahead, the mc of the night holding up a wireless mic with his phone in hand as the crowd erupted in cheers and hollers.
âi want to thank everybody for coming out tonight! itâs a pleasure to do this every year and see all of your talented wonderful facesââ
âoh no.â megumi mumbled, you looking up at him with a confused raised brow.
âwhat?â
âi think theyâre gonna call me up.â
your jaw dropped, stepping out of his arm and facing him.
âtheyâre gonna what?â
âyuji told me about this last yearâŠâ his face was practically pale as he looked to the dj booth, your best friend and yuji already cutting through the crowd to get up there. âthey call up certain players from different teams for recognition.â
âohââ you looked on ahead, an excited smile spreading across your face. âoh thatâs so nice baby! you deserve to be recognized like thaaatt!â
he slowly shook his head, absolutely fucking stiff as a rock and annoyance brewing in his chest over the party and event manager doing something fucking ridiculous like this.
âbaby letâs go to the bathroom.â
âthe bathroom?â you tilted your head. âwhy?â
âto hide.â
âgumi!â you sent him a comforting grin and ran your fingers through his soft black spikes of hair. âitâll be okay! they just want to show appreciation for your gift baby thatâs all.â
âi donât want it.â he mumbled, forehead dropping down to rest on your shoulder miserably as you giggled.
âbut i wanted to see you up thereee!â you whined, wrapping your arms around his hunched shoulders. âwanna see my cool baseball man in the spotlight for a little like he should be.â
megumiâs cheeks grew pink.
âbut letâs go to the bathroom or upstairs we canââ
âif you want me to go up there i will.â he cut you off.
âhuh?â your eyebrows furrowed as he picked his head back up. âwhatââ
âmâgoing up.â
you gasped. âno gumi itâs okay! i donât want you to do something that makes you uncomfortabââ
âhonda! ito! fushiguro!ââ
he cupped your cheek and kissed the other.
âiâll be back.â he murmured, patting your head while simultaneously swallowing back his displeasure for the situationâ but doing it solely for you. âstay here.â
âledger! itadori! okkotsu!ââ
âoâokay!â
âplease come up to the booth talented playersââ
megumi walked away from the bar and through the crowd, his height making it easy for you to spot him through the masses until he got up there with yuji and the rest of the players, you going on your tippy toes and peering to and fro to try and see where he was at but pursing your lips when you couldnât fucking see him anymore, ultimately deciding to move through the crowd yourself to find a spot where you could.
âladies and gentlemen could i please get a round of applause for your top players of the year?!â
an eruption of whistles and clapping pierced through your ears as you tried to shimmy your way in, finally landing a leeway in between several heads and seeing your boyfriend up thereâ grumpy and bothered with his arms crossed as you covered your mouth to try and suppress a laugh, phone in hand already recording.
âwoaâ megumi fushiguro?! first year iâve seen you here man!â
the crowd burst into surprised exclamations and gasps, the mc throwing a heavy arm around megumi as he stumbled forward, an unamused done expression plastered over his face as you held your phone up high with the biggest smile, probably looking utterly insane as you erratically flipped and rotated and zoomed in on his figure in every possible angle imaginable, the bright white lights illuminating him so insanely that he straight up looked like a god.
and you wondered then how in the fuck one of the mlbâs greatest players ever became interested in someone like you, for you felt like megumi was completely out of your league from the start with all of his glorious batting and pitching.
but every time you iterated exactly that to him amongst your endless daily ramblings, he would scoff and shake his head and gnaw at any part of your skin to get you to take back that ludicrous fucking statement, always thinking you were way too humble about yourself and polite and sweet to realize that he had to go through the trenches of telling different guyâs to fuck off if he saw they were even remotely interested in you without you knowing.
megumi did this even before you officially noticed him on the field.
and today was no exception as he scanned the main area of the penthouse to the tiki bar in search for you, the mc blabbering on about things he didnât care about as he realized you werenât where he told you to stay, quickly then scanning the crowd and his shoulders relaxing once he spotted you in the midst of the crowd, but eyes narrowing as he saw some stupid moron obnoxiously ogling your tits next to you while you were happily watching him with your phone propped up.
the fuck?
ââgood luck to you and itadori in the league championships! any words you wanna say for us here?!â the mc vocalized through the mic, holding it up to megumiâs mouth after.
âwrap it up.â
a mix of oooâs and laughs bounced off the walls, the mc awkwardly chuckling before unhooking his arm and patting a hand on his back.
âthatâs megumi fushiguro for you! now any nba players up here?!ââ
megumi immediately stepped off the platform and moved through the crowd, your eyes cutely twinkling once you noticed he was making his way over to you as you stopped your recording and stuffed away your phone.
âthat was so funnyâ oh!â
he swiftly stepped in between you and the guy to block his view, the stupid moron slightly going off balance from how close he actually was to you and the fact only further pissing megumi off, an arm coming to wrap around your waist as he led you out of the center and off to the side by the big wall with the projection screen on it.
âwhatââ you looked to where you previously were and back to him. âwhat happened? whyââ
he shrugged. âwanna talk over here baby.â
âoh, okay!â you nodded, sweet and oblivious as you enthusiastically yapped about how great it was seeing him up there.
but the guy who was ogling your tits was only the first wave.
âoh my god gumi!â you frantically tapped his shoulder and pointed to the projection wall. âitâs you! itâs you! oh my god iâve been waiting all night i want a picture right fucking now quick hurry hurryââ
you hopped on over with your mary jane pumps and stood next to the huge projected singular shot of megumi swinging his bat, one foot crossing over the other as you wrung your hands behind your back and tilted your head with a cheeky smile, megumi reaching in his pocket for his phone.
that pose alone might as well have been you violently shooting another cupids arrow through his chestâ his tingling pinky cheeks prominent under the purple neon hue of the penthouse as he took several photos, a fond smile growing on his face.
pretty.
megumi watched as you uncrossed your feet and seperated your hands, turning around and straight up pressing yourself against the wall with your tongue erotically out and spread palms over his projected snapshot, him snickering as he covered his mouth with the hand that was holding his phone, trying to ignore the way his dick twitched in his pants at the sight.
he took more pictures and gave you a silent thumbs up, you dropping your pose and skipping back over to him as he put his phone away and extended a waiting arm out to the side, you stepping in and his hand instantly snaking around your waist where it should be.
your gaze stayed locked to the wall, totally transfixed with glimmering heart filled eyes as it continued to play megumiâs greatest moments of his seasonâ most if not all from this year alone, but a good amount consisting of last years world series game where he absolutely dismantled the opposing team with every move he made on the field with no mercy, immense pride bubbling in your little heart.
âyouâre the coolest gumiâŠâ you spoke softly and he looked down at you, eyes softening at your dazed state.
âyeah?â
âmhm.â you responded, letting him tug you into his chest as he leaned and placed a gentle kiss to your cheek. âi think iâm gonna start crying and hyperventilating on the floor.â
he chuckled, delicately moving some of your hair over your shoulder to run his hand along the smooth skin there, lips coming down next to your ear.
âi love you.â
you grinned, your heart actually skipping beats and running around every corner of your inner body as you wrapped your arms around his neck, pulling him in.
âi love you too gumi!â you gave him a cute peck on the side of his head. âand i think iâm gonna start stalking you anyways like i said because i really need something to do on my down time when iâm not studying or at your eventsââ
megumi laughed, an infatuated squeaky one as he nodded against the crook of your neck and held you a little tighter.
âdo it.â
âokay iâll start monday! or maybe now and iâm gonna do it byââ
âoh my gosh megumi fushiguro!â
you felt him falter in your arms and turn his head, the both of you slowly separating from each other to see who it was and your brows slightly pinching once you did.
it was the girl from earlier. the one that bumped into you.
âhi! oh myâ iâm such a big fan of yours!â
your guard lowered a little upon hearing that, a small smile on your face as you looked at her.
âoh, hi.â he mumbled.
âiâve been a fan since you got signed actually!â she exclaimed, her short bobbed blonde hair and angel costume cute to you. âhow funny i run into you here right? must be fate.â
fate?
âwell itâsââ he shifted uncomfortably. âitâs a sports party⊠thingâŠâ
she giggled obnoxiously like sheâd just heard the funniest thing ever, fingers lightly smacking his shoulder as you stood there.
âi know silly!â she smiled, nudging his upper arm with her hand. âjust wanted to say that i admire you so much and think youâre the greatest! the way you play is amazing and i love it.â
you were absolutely happy with the fact that a fan was being so nice to megumi and telling him such kind words, as he deserved all of the praise and support and you loved whenever people expressed just that to himâ a total treat for you if you were there to witness it as well.
but the weird feeling in your gut was back⊠and why was she touching him so muchâŠ
âthanks.â he spoke simply, giving barely a smile before he made his way to turn back around.
âwâwait!â she shot her hands out. âiâm hana!â
he paused midway and nodded curtly. âhi hana.â
her face gleamed and she blushed, looking like sheâd just won the fucking lottery as she smiled big and cupped over her mouth with both hands, obsessed over the way her name sounded from him.
âdo i hear wedding bells?!â she squealed. âwhenâs the ceremony?!â
you choked on your fucking spit, your boyfriend completely taken aback as he looked at her bewildered and awkwardly, megumi sort of initially appreciating the support, but now he just didnât wanna partake in the conversation anymore as his mind was more interested in the ways youâd stalk him that you were about to tell earlier.
âso are you having fun tonight?â hana continued. âiâve never seen you around and i come to this event every year!â
âum yeah iâm here withââ
âyour friend?â she pointed at you. âhow cute! iâm here with a friend too.â
the way she barely acknowledged your presence, even when it was pertaining to you as she spoke about you rather than to you, and the way she literally insinuated marriage like it was nothing with your man, left a sour fucking taste in your mouth.
and friend?
âgirlfriend.â he corrected.
her face tightened.
âright!â hanaâs gaze landed on yours. âsorry! i couldnât tell.â
huh?
megumiâs arm was around your waist and she couldnât tell?
you hugged his upper arm to your chest and gently tugged him away. âsorry but we have to go it was nice meeting youââ
a spark of annoyance flashed through her eyes. âoh but i was talking to him thoughââ
ââiâm sorry bye.â
you pulled megumi harder and you both dove into the crowd, disappearing from hanaâs view as you went in search for your best friend and yujiâ agitated and feeling guilty that you were in case hana really was just a fan and was simply overly affectionate.
but she didnât have to disregard you like that eitherâŠ
megumi could sense you were a bit bothered by the grip you had on his arm and the way you barely looked at him as you shimmied through people, his brows furrowing in concern.
âbaby.â he leaned down next to your ear. âwhatâs wrong.â
you shook your head. ânothing. just trying to find yujiâs stupid bright pants.â
he smiled a bit.
âi think youâre lying.â
âiâm not.â
âbabyâ i can tell somethingâs bothering you.â he continued to pry and you pursed your lips, looking up at him finally.
âthat girl was kind of weirdâŠâ
âgirl?â he cocked his head to the side. âwhich girl?â
you paused. âtheâ the one that came up to you and told you her name and complimented youââ
âoh.â his dark blue eyes blinked and trailed off like he was searching his brain for answers, him ultimately left clueless. âsorry i actually forgot everything she said.â
you snorted, leaning forward and covering your mouth as you giggled and shook your head, somehow your boyfriend forgetting the interaction as a whole making you feel better.
âyouâre so cute gumi.â you stood up on your tippy toes and gave him a big fat kiss on the cheek. ânow letâs find my best friendâ bright pants! i see yujiâs bright pants!
you grabbed his wrist and quickly weaved through the crowd, your girl friendâs police officer costume coming into view as you let go of megumi and flung your arms around her neck, her immediately recognizing that it was you and gasping.
âoh my god i lost you y/n! iâm sorry!â she hugged you back and you frantically shook your head.
âno itâs okay!â you pointed to megumi. âhe got called up to the dj booth i was distractedââ
âthey kept asking you a bunch of questions and none for me man!â yuji pouted at megumi, your best friend laughing.
âthey probably got tired of you giving shout outs to the tiki bar every year when youâre up there babe.â she smoothed a hand over his bicep. âand also because megumi came out of his bat cave for the first time in decadesâŠâ
you leaned and placed your lips to her ear.
âi have to tell you something.â
âwhat?! what?!â she whipped her head around and looked at yuji. âyu! go to the tiki bar please with megumi i think we all left our mugs thereââ
âoh my fucking god we did!â he shoved his hands in his pink hair, completely horrified. âfushiguro letâs go we have to goââ
âwhy the fuck do i have to goââ
âno questions come on!â
yuji yanked megumi by his white button up and they tumbled through the crowd, you laughing hard as megumi looked at you over his shoulderâ a pleading disgruntled look on his face.
âokay i got rid of them now tell me.â
âgirl get ready.â you slowly shook your head, eyes wide. âbecause i think iâm about to crash out.â
âitâs that bad?!â she placed her hands on your shoulders. âwhat happened?!â
âa fan of megumiâs came up to him earlier.â you began. âbut the things she was saying were putting me a little off.â
her brows furrowed. âwhat did she say?â
âfirst she said that them meeting was fate.â you gnawed at your bottom lip. âand then she started saying how much she admired him and loved him on the field which is fine butââ
ânot fine but go on.â
you giggled and continued.
âshe barely acknowledged me⊠like at all. she thought i was megumiâs friend even though his arm was around my waistââ
âhuh?!â her eyes narrowed. âis she fucking stupid? whatâs her name?â
âhana andâ i donât know!â you whined. âbut then she literally said âdo i hear wedding bellsâ and âwhenâs the ceremonyâ when he said her nameââ
âwhat the fuck?!â she yelled. ây/n this girl was straight up flirting with him in front of you! oh my god if someone was doing that to me with yuji iâd be going to prison!â
âi was thinkingââ you hesitated. âthat maybe she was just really affectionate but i just feel like somethings not right.â
âhell no itâs not.â she shook her head. ây/n you need to stop being so nice all of the time and bite. next time some shit like this happens you need to say something. please donât let yourself be disrespected like that.â
she patted your shoulders and released you, crossing her arms. âand what did megumi say?â
âoh he forgot it all!â you beamed. âi think he was barely listening to what she was saying.â
âHAH! okay thatâs fine i wonât beat him.â
you playfully rolled your eyes and smiled. âi just wanna take shots from the bamboo pole and forget about it.â
âoh! itâs coming around!â your girl friend frantically looked around. âi saw it pass by and a group do it! it should come backââ
she stopped.
âwhat does hana look like?â
you quirked a brow.
âuhh short blonde hair? sheâs dressed up as an angel.â
âoh my fucking god.â she muttered. âturn around.â
you did, heart dropping once you saw that she was talking to megumi again at the tiki bar, animatedly and close to him that you nearly took your cupid wings off and chucked them at her.
âwhat the hell is she doing?â you mumbled. âgumi!â
megumiâs head snapped up from his hunched over position on the bar, head swiftly looking around until he spotted you and without another thought pushed himself from the counter and walked, leaving hana there with her mouth opening and closing like a fish out of water, cutting off whatever she was saying to him prior.
you tugged him in once he got to you and snaked your arms around his shoulders, pulling him in and placing your face into his neck.
âyou okay?â he asked over the music, rubbing slow circles on your hips with his thumbs.
âmhm!â you nodded. âwas just wondering if you wanted to do bamboo pole shots with me.â
he huffed out an amused breath and squeezed you. âsure baby. donât take too many though i donât want you to get sick.â
âno promises!â you grinned.
hana knew from the moment she bumped into you who you were.
how could she not? the only woman that managed to somehow sliver her way in megumiâs life and beat her to the game was like a broken record in hanaâs mindâ over and over you played and taunted her with every appearance she saw you with him, with every game and event and social media posting from him you were always thereâ sweet and beautiful with the angelic reputation of changing megumi for the better and treating others so fairly, physically stinging her eyes every time she saw it on the tabloids or on tv.
megumi was supposed to be hers, and when she lost the game she didnât know.
but her number one goal the minute she learned that megumi was in attendance at the party, was that she was gonna try with her life to make him see that he was destined for her. not for you.
though it wasnât working like she thought it would.
through the times sheâs pulled him and talked to him and flashed him sweet smiles and compliments, trying to copy the entity that you were so he would at least so spare her a fucking glance and listen to what she had to sayâ wasnât working as he always disregarded her and straight up treated her like she wasnât even there.
because of you.
and she was getting desperate.
increasingly so as she watched you and megumi and your little friends line up to take shots from the bamboo pole, all of you having fun and surrounded by people that loved youâ for you were the absolute life of the party as you pulled various others from the crowd to do shots with you and rejoice, hana staring from afar with rage as she couldnât help but just hate you with every kiss and laugh that megumi gave you.
and once hana saw an opening with megumi, him stepped off to the side as he watched you continue to down shots with your friends like nothing with amused eyes, she pushed her way through towards the bamboo line with a new immoral objective of getting him to just be interested in her and forget about you so that youâd crack, evidently showing him and everyone else that you werenât so angelic and poised after all.
âmegumi!â
he felt a tap on his shoulder and turned around, indefinitely confused as to why the same girl kept pulling him for chats once he noticed who it was.
âhi?â
âsorry just saw you by the bamboo line.â she smiled. âhave you taken any?â
âuh like two.â
megumi looked over his shoulder, attempting to keep an eye on you while at the same time talking to her and already thinking of ways he could cut it short, wanting to just go back to you and make sure you werenât feeling sick or that a random dude wasnât preying on you like a dog.
âi donât know how you can do that!â she shook her head and giggled. âi donât really drink like that.â
âi usually donât either.â
pathetic hope washed through her body like an avalanche, her face lighting up over the similarity and the fact that he was actually continuing the conversation with her instead of brushing her off.
âreally?!â she gushed. âwhat a coincidence! itâs like youâre my other half hehe.â
megumi froze.
why was she always telling him the most obscure things?
âumââ
âare you nervous for your league championship game coming up?â
several hoots and hollers made megumi turn around and see that you had taken a cocktail waitressâ tray and was literally doing her job for herâ handing out shots to whoever and excitedly bouncing on your toes in response to those who accepted.
âmegumi.â
he snapped his head back around.
âhuh?â
âi saidââ her eyes flickered to you before returning to him. âi said are you nervous for your league game?â
âsomewhat.â
âyou shouldnât be!â she reached up and smoothed a hand over his shoulder, her heart pumping that she was touching him. âyouâre the best on the team! youâre practically the reason why you guys win all of the time iâveââ
you saw what she did.
and maybe it was the alcohol in your system making you bratty and the fact that you were a bit overly tipsy, but you also saw the way he let himself be caressed on the shoulder like that without any consideration for you, wondering why he wasnât stopping the conversation as a whole and coming back to you and instead entertaining her, even after all of the weird shit she had told him before in front of you.
why didnât he care?
you smiled at the cocktail waitress and gave her back her tray, though it didnât quite reach your eyes as you tried to look around for your best friend, itching to get confirmation on whether or not you were being batshit crazy or if your feelings were valid as you searchedâ but halting once you heard megumiâs familiar squeaky laugh that he only let out with you.
megumi was laughing. wholeheartedly. and so was she.
what the fuck was so funny?
âheyââ your girl friend waved her hand in front of your face. âbabe are you okay? why are you crying?â
what?
you reached a hand up and touched your cheek, your fingers sure enough shimmering and wet under the purple lights once you pulled them away.
âi donâtââ your lip wobbled. âi donât know iâ i think itâs just because iâm tipsyââ
âwhere is megumi?â her concerned gaze scanned the crowd until they landed on him, eyes narrowing instantly as she scoffed and shook her head.
âwhat is this?â she threw her hands up. âditch my girlfriend for some other bitch day? megumi!â
he jumped and spun around, an initial annoyed look on his face over the way your best friend screamed at him, but eyes widening once he saw your shaking shoulders and covered face.
oh god.
megumi took long stride full steps away from hana to get to you, her sickeningly content with the fact that her presence alone with him upset you so much and threw you off your poised demeanor, thinking it was only a matter of time now before you took out your frustrations on him and drove him awayâ bonus points if you made a scene.
âwhat happened?â he hurriedly asked, gripping your shoulders and turning you around in his direction. âbaby what happened why are youââ
you pushed him away and hiccuped.
âi donât wanna talk to you right now.â
âwhat? why not?â his eyebrows furrowed. âheyââ
he reached to pull you in by the waist and you dodged his hand, turning around in the process and pushing your way through the crowd to get away from him, his heart sinking as he wasted no time in following after you.
âbaby pleaseââ
âno.â you stubbornly responded, damning the alcohol for making you act so irrationally. âwhy donât you keep talking to other girls all willy nilly without giving a single fuck about meââ
âwhat?â he spoke sharply, completely thrown off. âokay no hold onââ
megumi picked up speed and engulfed his arms around your torso, lifting you up and taking you down a secluded hallway away from the main area while you thrashed and whined in his hold.
âlet me go!â
âno.â
you sniffled.
âgumi let me go.â
âare you gonna tell me whatâs wrong?â
he turned into a darkened corner and slowed.
âno.â
he bit down on your arm and you yelped.
âokay yes i will!â
he loosened his arms and gently set you back down on your feet, nudging you around as he bent his knees to look at you at eye level.
âwhatâs wrong.â he pushed. âare you hurt?â
you shook your head and hiccuped, fingers coming up to carefully wipe your tears away without ruining too much of your makeup.
âwhy do you keep talking to her?â you mumbled.
âto who?â
âto hana.â
âhana?â his eyebrows furrowed. âwhoâs hana?â
âthe one that keeps coming up to you!â you expressed. âwhat did she tell you back there? while i was handing out shots?â
âoh sheâ she was asking me about the league game.â
âdid she say anything weird again?â you crossed your arms.
fuck.
âshe did babyâŠâ he spoke softly.
your teary eyes snapped open.
âactually? what did she say?â
megumi really didnât want to upset you any further, but he wasnât about to shamefully lie to you either.
âshe called me her other half.â
âare you serious?â you hiccuped. âand you just let her?â
âi didnât let herââ
âthis whole time youâve been letting her iâve seen you!â you sobbed. âshe touches you way too much and has been pulling you for chats all fucking night saying things that are completely disrespectful to me and you say nothing!â
âiââ
âand then youâre laughing with her after she called you her other half? and laughing like you do with me?â you put your hands up defensively. âiâm sorry didnât know you guys were the best of friends nowââ
âbabyâ i wasnât laughing at anything she said some drunk idiot tripped and fell on his face behind her.â he placed his hands on each side of your head and you stopped. âand i swear to god that i didnât realize any of those things because i donât give a shit about anyone else but you and iâm sorry.â
âbut she literally said do i hear wedding bells and whenâs the ceremony!â you cried, the alcohol triggering a new wave of waterworks as you covered your face. âhow could you not realize thatââ
âno i know baby i know thatâs on me.â he gently moved your hair away from your face. âeverything she was saying was so foul and i was just letting it happen and iâm so fucking sorry that i didnât put my foot down from the start. my entire focus is always on you and i was too stupid to realize you were hurting.â
âyouâre not stupid gumiââ
âyes i am.â he delicately pried your hands away from your face. âyes i am and you donât ever have to worry about things like this okay? the only thing that matters to me is you. and i canât tell you how sorry i am for putting you in this position and making you cry.â
âno itâs me iââ you hiccuped, cheeks buzzing with embarrassment. âiâm sorry gumi i just got jealous and i overreacted and iâm tipsy so it made everything worse. i didnât mean to yell at youâŠâ
he shook his head, murmuring as he pulled you into his chest. âno you have nothing to be sorry for⊠i would go nuts if some dude told you the same shit she told me.â
you giggled a little, and megumi was so glad that you had stepped up and said something, especially over something as drastic as this, for you were always too sweet and chose to swallow back things that bothered you around him.
âi would never do that to you pretty baby.â he mumbled. âi would never let anyone else in⊠just you.â
you pulled away from his chest and quickly shook your head. ânâno gumi i know you wouldnât. please donât think that iâm accusing you or anythingââ
âno absolutely not.â he spoke gently, thumbs reaching up to carefully wipe away the tears from your pretty face. âi just needed to tell you that⊠okay?â
you nodded. âokay.â
you stood on your tippy toes and wrapped your arms around his neck, his right away coming around your waist and pulling you in tightâ nuzzling his nose into the soft skin of your shoulder as relief washed over his body that you werenât upset with him anymore.
âare you tipsy like me?â you whispered cutely after a few seconds of comfortable silence, and he chuckled.
âyes.â he admitted. âi think i lost my phone.â
âgumi i feel it in your pocket.â
âi think thatâs my dick.â
âgumi!â you nudged him away and giggled hard, a silly small grin spreading across his handsome face as you simmered down and looked at him, lips coming up for a kiss and him gladly leaning down to give you oneâ the moment sweet and tender as you wetly lip locked and megumi drank you in, him completely fucking deprived of you.
âcan we go home.â he spoke in between kisses. âi wanna fuck.â
you laughed and pulled away, face hot as you bit back a smile. âwe can go in a little bit baby. i still wanna see if my best friend and i can talk to the nfl cheerleaders heh.â
he chuckled and nodded, pecking your forehead before releasing you and beginning the walk back to the main area, your head in a better place now that you got the reassurance you neededâ and so grateful you and megumi were able to bounce back after a situation like that with no repercussions, amazed time and time again at how understanding and patient your boyfriend was with you.
you moved your way through the crowd then in search for your best friend, not having to look for long seeing as she was right in the middle where you had left herâ her yelling up and down if anyone had seen either you or megumi and harassing whoever that said they mightâve caught a glance.
ây/n!â yuji pointed, and your girl friend whirled around with frantic wide eyes, running and tackling you into a big hug as she cried.
âwhere were you?!â she sobbed. âoh my god i was looking everywhere for you you were so upset i thought the she devil took you away or broke you and megumi up or killed youââ
you gasped. âno oh my goodness please donât cry!â your lip started to wobble again as you listened to her sniffles, hugging her back. âhell no i would never let her do any of that!â
âme neither!â she cried. âplease let me get violent with her pleaseââ
you laughed loudly and stepped back, carefully wiping her cheeks before treating yours as both of your men stared dumbfounded.
âfuck hana forget her we have to find the cheerleaders!â you exclaimed, placing your hands on her shoulders and shaking her. âare they still here?! have you checked their socials?!â
âyes! theyâre still here!â she frantically nodded. âi saw one while i was looking for you she wasââ
âis that one?â
megumi pointed to a girl who was straight up wearing her nfl cheerleader uniform with her pompoms, both you and your girl friend choking on air and gasping as you sputtered a bunch of nonsense and dragged your men with you over to her and her group.
âthis is our chance this is our chanceââ
why hadnât it worked?
had hana not upset you enough? tore you down enough to an insecure little bubble to make you bark and bite and be everything that she thought megumi despised? what had happened when she lost the sights of both of you once you left the bamboo line?
because what she was looking at now was making her sick with rage.
you, surrounded by people again and cheerleadersâ still stunning and breathtaking and not looking at all like you had just cried buckets like she thought you did, megumiâs arms around you from behind and actually closer now than before while you and your little girl friend conversed and laughed with the cheerleaders about god knows what, hana on the verge of screaming in agony over everything that was going wrong when she had expected a break up right about now.
she just didnât get it⊠what was so great about you?
and it didnât get any better when she started asking other people about you too throughout the night, the purpose being to dish out any nasty information she could of you to use it to her advantage, but getting straight fucking nothing from it as no one had a single bad thing to say about youâ referring to you as âfushiguroâs girlâ and how sweet and welcoming you were even if you had just met them, how funny you were and pretty and thoughtful and hana was just sick.
had she actually lost to you? had she lost megumi? after being in love with him since the start of his contract?
she thought she had gotten your entity down. hana thought she had managed to morph herself into someone like you since she found out megumi and you were together from the tabloidsâ watching you and your social media postings since then to see what you had done to turn his head, megumi someone she thought would never find love until she got to him eventually.
and at this point without hana wanting to admit it, she was more obsessed with you than she was with him.
because she cared. she cared so much about everything that you didâ the perfumes you wore, the ribbons in your hair, her stomach in complete utter knots watching the way megumi was with you all unfold in front of her in real time, cursing her jealous rotten eyes for how hard they fell for you and how much she worshipped all that you did.
how much megumi worshipped you.
because every time you took pictures with your friends he only looked at you, every move you made he followed after you, every time she tried to talk to him he dismissed her for you, and even every person that knew who you were at this fucking party absolutely loved and adored you.
it just wasnât fair. why couldnât megumi love her?
so what could she do? what else could she do?
leaning against the counter of the tiki bar, gaze fixed on megumiâs blushing cheeks and little smile with his face and button up covered in red lipstick kisses she didnât doubt were from you, him looking at angelic you like you were the sun itself⊠she conquered that there wasnât much she could do anymore.
âblue lagoon please.â
hana watched from the corner of her eye the man that just came up to the bar, bored and uninterested and on the verge of deciding to just go home, until she noticed who it was.
ino takuma.
she slightly turned her body in his direction, his eyes drifting to hers momentarily before flashing her a polite smile and looking away again.
âyouâre ino takuma⊠with megumi fushiguroâs team right? for the mlb?â
he turned his head. âoh yes! i am. nice to meet you!â
hana gave him a quick smile.
âdo you know his girlfriend by any chance? y/n?â
âyeah of course!â he grinned, a bit drunk. âsheâs great. really sweet.â
god, well arenât you just the greatest thing to ever exist?
she held back her agitation, ino receiving his drink from the bartender and slurping it down immediately.
âi actually was interested in her for a while.â he admitted with the straw in his mouth, loopy and inebriated. âbut megumi got to her first⊠lucky guy.â
her ears perked up.
âdo you still like her?â
ino thought for a moment.
âwell⊠a little.â he pursed his lips, a very slight pink hue to his cheeks. ânever got to explore it but every time we talk sheâs kinda like the one that got away heh⊠thatâs if megumi isnât pulling her away when i try though.â
a devilish idea sparked in hanaâs mind, because at this pointâ the woman was out for carnage.
and whether megumi ended up with her or not she didnât care. right now? she just needed to break you both up.
âthatâs kind of wrong, donât you think?â she sighed heavily. âwhy donât you try talking to her now? just you two! thereâs a hallway by the other side of the penthouse thatâs secluded⊠youâll get a proper chance to have a conversation!â
ino looked at her like she was insane.
âmegumi would actually bite my head off.â
âthatâs why you do it away from him and away from everybody else!â she shook her head disappointedly. âwhat, she canât be friends with you? you have every right to talk to her ino! so go for it.â
ino looked over to where you were, apprehensive as he gnawed at the inside of his cheek and actually really wanting to talk to you without megumi breathing down his neck for once⊠but the alcohol in his system making it hard for him to juggle whether it was the right choice or not to begin with.
âhave you guys ever tried for cheer teams before?!â
you and your best friend frantically shook your heads no, excited expressions as you hung out with half of the cheerleaders from one of the top nfl teams by the dj booth.
âyou should try out for ours!â one of them suggested over the music, a huge smile on her face. âseriously! you guys would do so well and you already know most of us!â
âoh my god i would but i donât even know if i can do a split!â you whined. âif i show up iâm gonna look like a fucking idiot.â
âiâm weak iâm un-athletic.â your best friend added miserably and they laughedâ a different pretty one shaking her head.
âdonât even worry about that!â she waved her hand dismissively. âiâll literally personally talk to the coach!â
you looked at her wide eyed. âreally?! wait no itâs okay! you donât have to do that i feel badââ
a different one stepped up. âno sheâs the captain sheâll do it!â
âoh fuck!â you slapped your hands over your mouth.
âhonestly?! actually?!â your girl friend exclaimed.
âour team prioritizes character over ability!â the captain spoke again. âability can be taught, not character, and you two are the prettiest and funniest bitches i have ever met.â
you all screamed and laughed as you and your best friend shook each other by the shoulders, unbelieving that you were being scouted right fucking now by the best nfl cheerleaders out there.
âhereâ give me your numbers and put your emails down tooââ
the captain pulled her phone out and swiped through a few apps before turning it over to you, you typing out your information on her notes app and passing it to your best friend after for her to do the same.
âiâll contact you guys tomorrow morning!â you both nodded and thanked her profusely, her smile bright as she took her phone back and gave you both a thumbs up. âplease keep in touch with me or iâll die.â
you and your best friend vowed that you would with more frantic nods and hugs, you spinning around to face megumi as the team conversed amongst themselves for a moment.
âdid you hear?!â you asked, eyes glowing and shiny with hope. âgumi did you hear?! they saidâ the captainâ she got my numberâ tomorrow morningââ
megumi laughed at your hyper yet spacey behavior, nodding and smiling warmly at you as he pulled you in by the waist, not even phased in the slightest that you and your girl friend got along so well with the cheerleadersâ but still a bit shocked nonetheless that youâd basically been offered a spot on the team and you only needed to finalize a few things with them.
âi did.â he gently spoke nudging your chin up, ruffling your hair then as he looked at you sincerely. âthatâs really really good baby. good job getting on their radar.â
your face broke out into a gigantic smile and you quickly pecked his cheek. âthank you thank you oh my god i need a drink right now i need to calm downââ
megumi playfully rolled his eyes and released your waist. âi can go get you one.â
âareâ are you sure gumi?â you gnawed at your bottom lip. âno itâs okay i can get itââ
he silently shook his head and kissed your forehead. âno baby you have fun⊠just stay here.â
you smiled sweetly at him and reluctantly nodded, watching him turn and walk through the crowd towards the tiki bar as you shifted your attention back to your girl friend and the cheerleaders.
âno youâre lying.â
âiâm not babe!â your best friend laughed. âthey got our contact information and i swear to god they really want us to come try out.â
âholy shit.â yuji shoved his hands in his hair. âholy shit iâm gonna have an nfl cheerleader girlfriend.â
âright?!ââ
âholy fuck youâre gonna look so good in those uniformsââ
âi know right?!ââ
yuji and your best friend jumped up and down and cheered loudly as you giggled alongside them, your mind completely preoccupied with the thought of how lucky you just were to gain leverage and connections like that with a professional dance team at an event like this.
âweâre gonna head home in a little bit after this!â you mentioned to your girl friend after her and yuji settled, her shoulders slumping in response. âiâm just gonna get one more drink before we go.â
âlame!â she pouted. âis megumi okay to drive?â
âyes he sobered up!â you smiled. ânot me man jesus christ.â
your best friend laughed and reached over to give you a hug. âokay just text me when you get to his placeââ
ây/n.â
you both stopped and turned, ino takuma behind you with a sheepish smile.
âoh hi ino!â you greeted him kindly. âi didnât realize you were here! you okay?â
âno yeah! yeah iâm alright. been hogging the bar or upstairs with some of the hockey players.â he smiled warmly. âthanks for asking.â
âmhm!â you nodded. âthat tiki bar is crazy every single drink they have is so good.â
he nodded vigorously. âitâs why iâm practically shitfaced right now god.â
you laughed at his phrasing, ino realizing then that he dangerously still kind of liked you with the way he swooned a bit over your smile.
âdo you wannaââ he hesitated. âdo you wanna talk? over there? for a little..â
âoverââ you peered over his shoulder, him pointing to the other side of the purple lit penthouse at a darkened hallway. âover there?â
âyâyeah⊠if thatâs okay!â ino scratched the back of his neck. âitâs just kinda loud here⊠and i havenât had the chance to properly talk to you in a while.â
âoh!â you nodded, thinking his intentions were purely innocent and justifiable, feeling bad yourself that you hadnât spoken to him in some time after megumiâs practices. âyes of course! iâm so sorry ino iâve been so busy iââ
âno itâs okay donât!â he grinned. âitâs not your fault whatsoever i justââ
you and ino began your walk to the other side of the penthouse, your best friend and yuji shooting each other weird looks that went unnoticed by you, ino leading you away from the crowd and to the other side of the main area.
youâve always respected and had a really great impression of ino, him never failing to be kind to you since the moment he introduced himself at the banquet way back whenâ helpful and genuine and not a bad bone in his body as he was a hard worker for the team and catered to all, you touched that he always took the time to greet you at least once every time you were there for megumi at his baseball events.
âhow are you and megumi doing?â he asked, crossing his arms as he casually leaned against the wall of the hallway, you wringing your fingers behind your back and doing the same.
âweâre great!â you beamed. âour two year anniversary is coming up soon!â
âoh wow!â he tightly smiled. âitâs been two years already? shit.â
you giggled and nodded. âi know! time flies hehe.â
ino dismissed the slight growing pit in his stomach, the alcohol in his system obnoxiously amplifying his crush for you as he tried to simmer it down and just conversate with you while he still had you on your own.
but he didnât think itâd be this hardâ his drunk mind blurring the definitions of morality and respect as his judgement was sloppy and you were just so fucking pretty, ashamed of the way he was thinking how a bubbly sweet girl like you ended up with someone as stoic and stern like megumi, someone who was the complete opposite of who you were.
ââŠare you okay ino?â you spoke softly, eyebrows pinched in concern at the distant look in his eye.
âhuh? oh yeah! sâsorry i justââ his cheeks heated up. âiâm tipsy donât pay that much attention to me.â
âoh no donât even i am too!â you laughed. âi had two drinks from the tiki bar and like four shots from the bamboo pole.â
he looked at you incredulously. âhow are you standing?â
âi donât know!â you covered your mouth and leaned forward, coming back up against the wall once you calmed down and took a deep breath. âiâm good though iâm great.â
he smiled softly. âyou are⊠and you look really good by the way.â
you faltered a bit but quickly fixed your demeanor, knowing ino only meant that in a friendly way and completely missing the way his drunken gaze flickered to your boobs momentarily before returning to your eyes, his cheeks flaring up at what he did.
and the angel on his right shoulder was absolutely beating the devil on his left for planting two guilty images in his head then.
one imagine that was lewd and sinful and one he wanted to get rid of immediately.
and another image of what it would be like to kiss youâŠ
just once.
âfushiguro! what can i get you?â
megumi was hunched over the tiki bar with his elbows on the counter, his eyes scanning the drink menu as he tried to decipher which drink to get you that youâd like, knowing the fruitier ones were particularly your favorite.
âum⊠do you have anything that isnât strong on alcohol.â
the bartender pointed to the menu, megumiâs gaze landing on âjungle birdâ.
âthis oneâs your best bet.â he took his barrel shaker out to prepare for megumiâs order. âi can also cut back the alcohol some more if you want me to.â
he nodded. âis it likeâ fruity.â
âyeah!â he grabbed a glass from the back. âiâll cut back the alcohol and add more pineapple juice to it so itâs better.â
âthank you.â megumi sent him a thin smile, the bartender giving him a thumbs up before turning his back to him and getting to work, him not even realizing that hana was standing next to him at the bar.
âyou getting another drink?â
megumiâs eyes flung to the source of the voice, annoyance pumping through his veins as he saw it was the same girl that had upset you, and the same one who wouldnât leave him the fuck alone.
âyeah for my girlfriend.â he responded flatly.
hana hummed. ânice! where is she?â
âback overââ
he looked over his shoulder and stopped, instantly straightening up when he didnât see you in the crowd anymore and worry spiking through⊠as he knew you were a little tipsy and naive at the moment.
âhmm⊠weird! actually you know what? i did see her walk away earlier!â
his gaze snapped to hers, hana thrilled since this was the first time he actually looked at her in the face.
âwhere.â
âwith ino takuma!â
his eyes narrowed. âwhat?â
âyeah! i saw them talking in that little secluded area on the other side⊠they looked kind of cozy in there i donât know.â
cozy?
âwhat do you mean.â
âmmmââ she looked up in thought. âfrom what i saw she pulled him to talk⊠and it kind of looked like she was all over him⊠sorry megumi. iâm just trying to look out for youââ
all over him?
oh fuck no.
megumi stepped to the side and drowned her out, squinting his eyes to try and see if he could spot you on the other side where you supposedly were until he didâ you and takuma in a little corner talking and laughing, him obviously drooling over your tits and alarmingly too close to you as megumiâs jaw hardened.
it looked like he was about to fucking kiss you.
ââi would never do that to you what your girlfriend is doing is disrespectfulââ
megumi moved without a single word and bumped shoulders with hana on the way, her staggering back a little and scoffing as she watched him disappear to the darker side of the penthouse.
and megumi was furious.
because how many fucking times did he have to make it obvious to takuma that you were off limits, that you had been off limits that you were never on limits? and why were you both so far away from everybody else? from him? why had you pulled him to talk? what for?
megumi understood from the get go exactly why you were so upset about hana saying absurd things to him throughout the night, but with the sight of you now pressed up against the wall as takuma was basically cornering you in, the both of you all alone and secluded and him knowing you were too helpless and nice to call out when a person was being weirdâ really put the situation into perspective now that the roles were reversed.
and he hated it. hated it so much.
so so much as his mind raced and spun with jealousy over another man wanting to sweet talk his girl, immense venom in his chest thinking ino was actually fucking insane for even attempting such a thing as he shoved and pushed through the stubborn crowd until heâ
âwhat the fuck are you doing.â
megumi grabbed your wrist and tugged you behind him while he looked straight at ino, his pull a little rougher than he intended as he created distance between the two of you.
âohâ hi gumi!â you greeted happily. âlook itâsââ
âdid you hear what i said?â
âyeahâ yup yupââ ino cleared his throat and shot back, face paling over what he almost did. âi was just umâ talking to y/n.â
âtalking.â he repeated. âand you were about to kiss her too right?â
âno iââ ino looked over at you. âiâm sorry y/n i donât know whatââ
âhuh?â your eyes snapped back and forth between them. âgumi what do you meanââ
megumi jerked his head down in your direction. âdid you pull him for a chat or did he pull you?â
you shrunk back a little, your boyfriendâs usual gentle eyes now sharp and crazed and one you had never seen from him besides through particular tough games on the field.
âheâ he pulled me but why does it matterââ
âwhy does it matter?â
his head shot back to ino, gaze narrowing.
âwhat the hell did you think you were gonna get out of this?â he spoke harshly. âtaking her over here away from everybody else? away from me?â
âfushiguroââ
âso i wouldnât see right?â he stepped forward and you quickly grabbed his button up from the back. âso i wouldnât see you try and sweet talk her and change her mind? to take advantage of her? knowing sheâs too nice to say no?â
âno man i would never.â he shook his head. ânever iââ
âyouâre full of shit.â he spat. âyou think iâm an idiot? you think i donât know what you were just about to do with her?â
âgumi stop itââ
you tried to come around his frame but he only pulled you back behind him.
âmegumiâ iâm sorry man i really am iâm drunk right now andââ
âso you think that makes it okay for you to try to make a move on her?â he shook his head in disbelief. âsheâs in a relationship with me ino. we play on the same sports team what the fuck are you doing?â
âiâ i donât knowââ
âyou still like her then?â
what.
âno i donâtââ
âdonât bullshit.â
ino ran an exasperated hand down his face. âokay fuck a little!â
âwell thatâs too damn bad!â megumi shot back. âget your own.â
ino felt horrible.
fushiguro was right. everything he was saying was absolutely right and he had never felt so much shame as he looked at stunning you through the cracks of megumiâs arms, for he not only fucked up his friendship with his teammate, someone he works with, but with you. a person like you an utter loss if driven awayâ him more than sure that thatâs exactly what he did just now.
and what compelled him to do this in the first place? he couldnât remember anymore.
âfushiguro punch me.â
megumi looked at him bewildered while you gasped, frozen in place.
âhuh?â
âsock the shit out of me right now.â
âmânot gonna do that idiot even though you deserve itââ
âno do it right now iâm serious and weâll call it even.â
megumi rolled his eyes. âgo home takumaââ
âdo it or iâll kiss y/nââ
megumi instantly reeled his fist back and knocked the fuck out inoâs jaw, blood boiling and chest heaving over what he said as you slapped a hand over your mouth in shock, ino hunched over with a hand on his face.
âthanks.â he choked out.
âweâre not even dingus.â megumi mumbled. âbut go home.â
ino nodded, sending you one last apologetic look before stepping away from the two of you and down the hall until he was out of view.
âwhat the fuck was thatââ
âdid he try anything else?â he cut you off.
you looked up at him, trying to peer around his shoulder at his face. ânâno he didnât he didnât try anythingââ
âhe didnât try anything?â he turned around, brows furrowed. âbabyâ he was staring at your tits and he tried to kiss you.â
âhow?!â you exclaimed, genuinely confused. âwe were just talking andââ
âwhy did you go with him when he pulled you to talk.â
you blinked. âbecause itâs ino. heâs a friend i didnât think anything bad of itâŠâ
âyou didnât think anything bad of him taking you to some dark fucking place without anyone else around?â
âiâiâm sorry gumi.â you gnawed at your bottom lip, it registering in your dumbass brain now how shady inoâs request was to talk to you in the middle of an empty hallway. âi didnâtâŠâ
âyou didnât?â
he stepped forward and your eyes widened as he backed you further and further up against the wall, lips coming down next to your ear as he placed his palms flat next to either sides of your head.
the logical and empathetic part of megumiâs brain was yelling at him not to utter his next few words, that he ran the risk of deeply upsetting you and ripping open the bandaid of what you two had previously just cured⊠but the rest of his brain and entire fucking body and soul was livid.
livid at takuma for taking advantage of your kindness, livid at him for thinking he could successfully pull the shit that he pulled while you were naive and sweet, and livid at every single god damn man in this building for preying after you like a piece of meat and like he wasnât just standing right there next to you with a hand on your hip.
and megumi was gonna flip it back on you⊠his anger completely misdirected as he was delirious and fucked off after the events of today and wanted to rile little you upâ afraid to admit that he was shaken at the fact that he couldâve potentially lost you to someone as respectable as takuma, for as stupid and shitty and drunk as he was earlier⊠ino wasnât a bad person in the slightest.
you matched better with someone like him.
and he didnât like that at all.
âwhat if hana had pulled me here hm? to a place where nobody else was around..?â
your brows furrowed.
âwâwhatââ
âwhat if she was the one to pull me in this dark empty hallway to try and kiss me?â
you swallowed, jealousy and venom swirling in your chest as you breathed out shakily through your nose, a picture perfect image of the stupid scene megumi was describing sending a sting of agitation through your insides as you narrowed your eyes at him, his hidden underneath the front pieces of his black spiky bangs.
âwhy are you telling me this.â
he didnât respond, his splayed out hands balling up into fists.
âdo you get off to this? is that whatâs going on?â
the tremor behind your voice and your shaking shoulders broke him out of his dark clouded fog and he straightened up, regret hitting him like a brick once he noticed your teary eyes and angry furrowed brows.
âshit iâm sorry iâm sorryââ
you snatched his wrist and yanked him with you out of the hallway, him stumbling behind you as he sputtered out apologies and pleas for you to turn around, for you to look at him as you pushed your way through the crowd back at the main penthouse area.
âpretty baby please iâm so fucking sorryââ
you said nothing, and anxiety welled up in his chest, wondering where you were going and if you were crying as he tried to nudge back and stop you, you only pulling on him harder as you reached the stairs of the main area.
a drunk random guy made himself known from the crowd and leaned over suddenly, his eyes wide and comically bewitched by you as he placed a hand on your shoulder.
âoh my godâ you are so beautiful!â
you looked at him rattled as you tried to get away from his strong grip, megumiâs mind over the fucking edge at this point as he grabbed his wrist and jerked it off your shoulder with such a force that it sent him tripping over his feet.
âthe fuck do you think youâre doing moron?!â
âoh is she your girl?â he put his hands up defensively. âmy bad sheâs hotââ
megumi lunged and you quickly wrapped your arms around his torso to pull him back, wrestling with him as you dragged him up the grand stairs of the penthouse.
âbaby let me go.â he spoke firmly and out of breath. âlet me go right nowââ
you ignored him as you tugged at his wrist again and continued up the stairs, him clamping his mouth shut and shitting himself, ashamed of his temper and the behavior heâd been exhibiting left and right as he was sure you were about to break up with him once you found the appropriate setting to do it in, his eyes cast down to the ground and filled with remorse.
you speed walked down the wide hall, pumps clacking against the shiny tile flooring as you opened several doors before you found a vacant bedroom, dragging him in and slamming the door closed behind you with the click of a lock, the music from downstairs now a distant vibration through the walls.
and megumi kept rushing out apologies, trying to explain himself as you turned and closed in on him at the edge of the bed, shoving him down and climbing over him in a straddle as his words got caught in his throat, looking up at you with round eyes.
âbaby..?â
he watched you lean back and slowly, tenderly, undo each and every cross and knot from the front of your corset, your little cupid wings long gone now as your gaze stayed glued to his, your bottom lip pulled between your teeth in a little smile.
megumi cautiously propped up on his elbows, observing the way your soft tits spilled out of your corset as you gracefully undid it entirely, throwing it next to you and tilting your upper body down to his level sensually while his heart pattered against his chestâ his lips reaching and connecting with the side of your neck as he placed slow open wet mouthed kisses alongside it, licking after each one before starting anew.
he breathed in sharply through his nose then and pulled away. âwaitâ baby first iâm sorry okay? iâm so sorryââ
âbe quiet gumi.â you murmured against his jaw, trailing little sucks and nips at the skin as his eyes fluttered closed, him nearly missing how you tugged your mini skirt off and left yourself with just your lacy panties on top of himâ rubbing your pussy teasingly over his clothed cock.
âfuck.â he breathed out, his trembling hands undoing his button up as he hastily sat up and shook it off his shoulders, tossing the white cotton material somewhere in the room and enveloping you in his arms, desperately sucking and biting over the flesh of your tits and nipples as you moaned so sweetly in his ear.
you pressed your pussy down hard on his crotch, megumi moaning with a mouthful of tit as he sat back on his elbows again and rode his hips up to meet yours, obsessed with the way you looked on top of him now with your thigh high socks on and pretty little faceâ unsure of how the events from earlier led up to this moment but choosing not to question it whatsoever, eyelids blissfully closed as you ran your hands up and down his chest tenderly, rutting on him.
âi wanna fuck you gumi.â you pouted, and megumi swore he saw stars. âtake your pants offââ
his hands dived for the waistband of his jeans, fumbling with the buckle of his belt and chest moving rapidly as he hurriedly unclasped it, slipping it off and tossing it to the other side of the roomâ you swinging a leg off of him so he could kick the rest of his clothes off, megumi grabbing you and settling you back over his lap once he was bare.
you tugged your panties off and sat your puffy lower wet lips on his aching cock, sliding over it deliciously and slowly before lifting and lining his dick up with your hole, sinking down on him as megumiâs eyes rolled back at the feeling.
âyou like it baby?â you huffed as you bounced on his dick. âdoes it feel good?â
megumi lustfully nodded as he reached to place his hands on your waist, you slapping them away and his eyes flying open in responseâ eyebrows pinching.
âwaitââ he bit back a moan as you started going faster. âlet meââ
âtouch me and i stop.â
âwhat?â he shook his head. âno donât do thatââ
he reached for you again and you slapped his hands away.
âi said no gumi.â
what the fuck?
megumi reached again and you straightened up on your knees, his dick slipping out of you and landing with a heavy thud on his lower tummy as his breath hitched.
you got off his lap and his eyes widened, disbelieving that you were actually being serious as he confusedly watched you pull the red lace from your corset, tossing the rest of it somewhere and moving further on the bed with your knees.
âsit up on the headboard.â
megumi dumbly blinked.
âdo it or iâm putting my clothes back on and going downstairsââ
he shot up and propped his shoulders and head up on the metal frame, you coming around and swinging a leg back over him as his mind went into a fucking frenzy over the way you were acting, too in his thoughts to notice that you had tied his wrists to the metal bars with your lace, eliminating his privilege of putting his hands on you.
you scooched back down and mushed his cheeks up with your fingers, pecking his puckered up lips and smiling innocently.
âbe good.â
âbabyâ fuck!ââ
you shoved his cock back inside you and he choked, you picking up your previous brutal pace as he heaved and tugged at the lace in a horny sweat, never in his life seeing you like this as his skin physically itched and burned to touch you with every bounce of your pussy on his length, your cunt so warm as it strangled the life out of his dick and milked it, your tits bouncing in his face and the view of your ricocheting ass a straight up torment to him as he continued to pull frustratedly on the lace.
âlet me touch you baby pleaseâ hah!ââ
ânope.â
âplease pretty iâm so sorry iâm sorry for everything that i did!â
his body trembled as you pistoned down on his cock, hiccups coming from his throat as his hips pathetically lifted from the mattress to compensate for not being able to feel you up, overstimulated tears at the corners of his eyes.
you whimpered and licked your lips delightfully at how good he felt and how he was whining for you, making him pay back for everything he did and said tonight as you leaned down and licked a long stripe up his chest to the side of his neck.
âholy shitââ heave âholy shitââ
you sat up on your knees and let his dick fall out again, megumiâs eyes bulging open and jaw dropping at the sudden stop.
âput it back in.â he panted. âi beg you please put it back inââ
âhmmm⊠i donât knowâŠâ you rubbed your pussy over his cock, noises sticky and squelchy as you pondered. âi think i wanna stay just like this!â
you leaned down and gave him a wet kiss on his cheek.
âbaby listen to me.â he looked at you desperately as you pulled away. âi love you i love you please untie meââ
âyou love me?â you grinned.
âmore than anythingââ
âdidnât seem like it all those times you hung out with hana!â you shook your head disappointedly. âwhy donât you keep hanging out with her and talking about her and throwing it in my face yeah? maybe ask her to get you off.â
ânâno baby iâm sorry i donât know why i did thatââ
âand since you like hanging out with her so much, iâll go and hang out with ino.â
he stilled.
âhuh?â
megumiâs chest picked up speed as he roughly tugged at the lace, your words already riling him up with the mere mention of you with somebody else.
âmhm! maybe i should slide my pussy over his dick just like thisââ
âthe fuck you just say to me?â
ââand let ino fuck me and bite me and suck my titsââ
megumi yanked and the lace snapped in two, tackling you and throwing you face down on the bed as he hauled your ass up and smacked it hard, receiving a yelp from you.
âis that what you want?â he plunged his dick inside of you and you cried out, going off balance from trying to lift yourself with your hands and dropping back down by the force. âyou wanna be a slut and replace me?â
he grabbed a piece of the torn up lace and joined your wrists behind your backâ hastily tying them together and securing it roughly, hooking his hands on the underside of your elbows and wrenching you up.
âgumi!ââ
âyou gonna do that to me baby?â he hammered his pelvis against the fat of your ass while holding you up at an arch, the bend giving megumi the leverage to absolutely demolish your insides while he fucked you. âyou gonna break my heart like that?â
âno!â you sputtered, high pitched whimpers from you filling his ears. âi would never!ââ
âuhuh, sure.â he panted, letting go and throwing you down on the sheets below to grip your hipsâ slamming them back to meet his in such a brutal pace that tears of ecstasy were streaming down your face, your cute pitchy moans mixed with your hiccups and sobs thrilling him sickeningly at the moment, for megumi was too far gone and in a state of animalistic and scary need for you, wanting you to remember that youâd always be his.
âyouâd never yet i find you all alone with another man?â
âgumi iâm sorry!â you hiccuped. âiâm so sâsorryââ
megumi reached over and meanly pinched your wet cheek.
âi donât wanna fucking hear it.â
he looped his fingers through the lace and pulled you up again, wrapping one arm over your shoulders under your chin and the other over your tummy as he enveloped you, dick splitting you open so fucking good that drool seeped from the corner of your mouthâ megumiâs tongue coming out to lick it up alongside your tears and you squirming and pouting as he did.
âi bet ino wants to play with your pretty little pussy like this huh?â he spoke softly in your face, eyes crazed and wild as you jerked up and down. âi bet every single fucking guy at this stupid party wants to play with whatâs mine right? and youâd let âem? youâd do that to me baby?â
you sniffled and whined. âno gumi!â hic!â i love you i wouldnâtââ
âiâd kill for you babyâŠâ he whispered in your ear, nose nuzzled in your hair as your breath hitched.
âso be careful who you talk to yeah?â
megumi threw you back down and broke the lace again with two hands, your arms springing apart freely as he flipped you on your back and spread your pretty thighs, cock lining up, thrusting in and drilling as he hovered over you and kissed you so sloppilyâ majority of it the sloshing of tongues as you moaned into each otherâs mouths and made a wet drooly mess.
âgumiâ can iâ pantâ can i cum please pleaseââ
he shivered at your begging as he trailed his lips to your cheek and gave you a kiss, hips rapid and curt as he felt his cock on the brink of spilling.
âyou wanna cum on my dick?â
you licked your lips. âmhm! please.â
so sweet.
âyeah?â
âuh huhââ
âcumâ hahâ all over my dick baby sâokayââ
âguummiiii!ââ
your orgasms flooded through both of your bodies like a white flash, you as a pair completely fucked out and sweaty and abused as megumiâs cum drained into your pussy, hot and droopy as his hips continued to absentmindedly rut his cum back inside of you while you were both borderline checked out with pink cheeks and dewy skin.
megumi was the first to come down from his high, his fogged half lidded gaze looking at your pretty face and pressing multiple small kisses along one side of your cheek, coaxing your little mind to come back from la la land as you stirred and whimpered.
âyou okay?â he whispered, and you weakly nodded, sending him a cute tired smile.
âi thinkââ he sat up and moved a few strands of your hair away from your eyes, mumbling. âi think i was too rough baby iâm sorryâŠâ
âwhat you just said was a sin.â you spoke flatly and he chuckled, you shifting to curl into his side and wrapping your arms around him, face hiding in his chest.
ââŠare you mad at me.â
his eyebrows pinched, a soothing hand running up and down your back. âno, never.â
megumi sighed deeply and stared up at the ceiling. âthat should be my question to youâŠâ
you lifted your face from his chest and looked at him. âwhy would i be mad at you gumi?â
âfor everything.â he mumbled. âeverything i did.â
you giggled, his heart instantly flooding with warmth at the sound as he clutched you tighter.
âbut you didnât do anything baby.â you kissed his collarbone. âeverything you did i wouldâve done exactly the same and maybe even worse.â
you played with the hems of your knee high socks. âbut i shouldnât have gone with ino gumi iâm really sorry... i genuinely just thought he wanted to catch up as friends⊠not that heâ you know. i didnât even know that until today.â
and megumi already knew it was exactly just thatâ your precious kind self trusting ino with everything you had, trusting a friend, that you werenât considering any of the logistics that could consider a request like his shady.
but he was still so bothered in that moment. and he regrettably couldnât help it, usually being able to swallow jealous tendencies whenever they appeared, but completely losing it seeing as you were so close to being disrespected like that.
and one issue after another and another made him shamefully insane for a little.
âno baby i know you donât have to explain.â he answered gently. âi acted like a fucking psychopath today man.. i canât tell you how sorry i am.â
âoh absolutely not.â you scoffed. âyour reactions were so justifiable gumiâŠâ
you looked at him. âyou were frustrated and so was i. it was only natural for us to start having a fucking meltdown⊠but we had it together! right?â
megumi laughed a little and nodded, pulling back to look at you as you grinned.
âwe just matched each others freak is all.â
how you managed to make every sour situation better and funny no matter the circumstance, was one of the millions amongst other things megumi loved most about you.
âiâm also trying to say that you donât have to worry so much about me gumiâŠâ you mentioned. âi can defend myself if i need to okay? i love to hit a man that deserves it.â
he playfully rolled his eyes and smiled softly at you, nodding and accepting your words but them having absolutely no effect, as he was going to continue to worry over you until his very death bed and beyondâ that being a promise.
because from the second that you blessedly agreed to be his two years ago, megumiâs job was to worry about you and take care of you, to love you as he silently promised to you over and over again that he would try his hardest to keep you happyâ happy with the life that he has given you as your man, and happy with him so that youâd keep wanting forever with him like he so badly wanted with you.
hana was nowhere to be found after you and megumi went back downstairsâ not that either of you cared in the slightest as you gathered up your tiki mugs, bid your best friend and yuji goodbye and left the party as fast as you could, eager to get to his apartment and snuggle up under the covers with the warmth of each otherâs bodies gently lulling you both to sleep, something megumi had been looking forward to all night and content once he finally got his wish.
and even after the roller coaster of events that happened at the halloween party, the both of you were happy and healthy and laughing about what had happened a couple of days laterâ you over at his apartment in bed with him during a rainy lazy november day, pajamas and fuzzy socks still on even though it was well past morning already, and with the smell of cookies baking in the oven from the recipe you had made together just for fun to partake in fall activities for the month, the two little pumpkins you had carved silly faces in earlier today with megumi sitting side by side cutely on his dining room table and âin loveâ.
âi say we run down the street right now in our pjâs.â
âbaby itâs pouring outside.â
âso?â you pouted, crossing your arms as you sat there straddling his lap. âand then we can kiss in the rain!â
he smiled softly. âyouâll get sick though.â
âand so will you so then we can be sick together in your bed and have sick sex how about thatââ
megumi threw his head back and laughed, the crinkle in his eye one you adored so much as you giggled alongside him and traced absentminded figures on his chest, his hands squeezing and caressing over your thighs lovingly.
âyour audition is next week right.â he murmured. âfor the cheer team.â
âmhm!â you nodded sweetly. âiâm sick to my stomach.â
he snorted, eyes flickering to yours amusedly. âyou really shouldnât be baby. it seems like they really want you and your best friend in.â
âyeah butââ you paused. âwhat if when i get there and they see me look like a fucking idiot they change their minds? or i talk their ears off and i get banned? or what if i ruinââ
âyouâre not gonna get banned.â he chuckled. âjust do your best okay⊠and i already know you will. trust me.â
you grinned, leaning down and peppering little kisses all over his rosy flushed face.
âyouâre so niiiceeee gumi my goodness!â
he playfully rolled his eyes, the little smile on his face unwavering as he looked at you.
at his future.
âclose your eyes.â
you stopped. âhuh?â
âclose your eyes.â he squeezed your thighs reassuringly. âi have a present.â
you gasped. âreally?! holy fuck wait okayââ you covered your eyes with your hands. âokay okay iâm ready.â
you heard the opening and closing of a drawer, giddy and excited on his lap as he shuffled through a few things that you werenât sure of.
âcan i open nooww?â
he laughed a little. âhold on baby.â
âmaaannââ
âokay now you canââ
you ripped your hands away from your face and you froze.
megumi had the prettiest black ring you had ever seen in your life in between his thumb and index, shiny and dainty as it had a cute black little heart in the middle to complete the piece, holding it out for you with flustered cheeks as he looked to the side.
âgumiâŠâ
âitâs a promise ring.â he peered up at you. âdo you like it.â
âaââ your eyes snapped to his. âa promise ring?â
he took your left hand that was on his chest and raised it, gently sliding the ring over your ring finger as you sat there in utter shock, him letting go and you slowly retracting your arm with your gaze locked on the stunning jewelry piece.
megumi had the ring hidden for months and dumbed around looking for the right time to give it to you⊠a time that was perfect and meaningful and intimate as he took it everywhere he went for that timeâ hidden in the crevices of his duffel bag during practice, stuffed in the pockets of his jackets or sweaters, and even the day of the party, his fingers playing and running along the smooth little heart while you had gone to change into your costume in his room, embarrassingly afraid and nervous over what youâd say even though he knew he didnât need to be.
âiââ he struggled, you looking at him so sweetly and patiently as he tried to get his thoughts together.
âremember⊠when we went on that trip to the mountains with my dad⊠the car ride coming back?â
you quickly nodded. âi do.â
âand when you said that⊠you thought about us married.â
you blushed furiously and you nodded again, a silly shy smile growing.
âi was serious when i said i did too.â he stared up at you sincerely.
your eyes softened, your fingers lightly grazing over the ring, feeling it.
âi want a life with you..â he mumbled. âi want you to know and remember that⊠that i love you and i promise you soon itâll happen. and on days where youâre not happy with me that iâd do anything for you so we can fix it.â
megumi never messed around when it came to you, and you were the one thing he never wanted to lose or let go.
he could live without and lose his car, his apartment, his things his fucking career and he still wouldnât give a shit as long as your pretty face and smile was still by his side through it allâ for you were the thing he absolutely couldnât live without and would rather swim in boiling scalding water than experience it happen first hand.
megumi softly pinched your cheek. âi want you in my life forever pretty baby.â
your lip wobbled. âyou do?â
he nodded, reaching into the collar of his hoodie and tugging out a silver chain with a black ring looped through, his heart beating through the roof as he held it up for you to see.
âi got a chain for it so iâd still be able to wear it under my uniform on the field.â
oh how you fucking melted at that, thinking over how megumi was so dedicated, so committed to the things that mattered most to him, and you couldnât believe still sometimes even after being with him for two years and him always making sure you knewâ that you were one of those things.
and you loved him.. so fucking much as you sniffled and covered your face, leaning forward to lay on his chest as megumiâs eyes softened and arms came to wrap around your body.
âiâm so happy i met you gumi.â you whispered in between your sobs, those words alone sending a spark of emotion through his body, feeling his eyes oddly and ever so slightly prickle.
âiâm so happy i met you baby..â he murmured, hand lifting to pat and smooth over the back of your head. âdonât cry..â
you sniffled and wiped your eyes, feeling so warm and safe under megumiâs arms as he kissed your wet cheeks and carded your hair away from your face, silently so loving as you settled down.
âiâm always happy with you gumi okayâŠâ you spoke. âiâm never not happy. ever. and iâm so fucking thankful every single day that you love me as much as i love you and that i get to keep you.â
he breathed out a little laugh through his nose as you sat up, his glimmering lovesick eyes on you, you smiling.
âi want you in my life forever too baby.â you murmured, playing with the chain on his neck and fiddling with his ring. âi always have.â
megumi smiled, the feeling of joy and love so potent in his chest that he didnât think a feeling so strong like that even existed or was supposed to happen to him.
but you made it happen. you never failed to make it happen.
his happiness.
âi wanna have your babies.â
megumi choked at your sudden comment, arm flying up to cover his coughs with the crook of his elbow as you giggled uncontrollably at his reaction.
âwhat?! itâs easy we just do what we already do now except i skip a month on my pill and you cum twice in me instead of onceââ
âbaby!ââ
âiâm kidding!â you snickered over the furious blush on his cheeks, tapping his pinky nose. âiâm kidding i need to be a cheerleader first and then you can impregnate me because i know you want that so badââ
âoh my godââ
ââand maybe you should cum inside three times actually because third times the charm and i feel likeââ
megumi suddenly flipped your positions and tackled you down, lifting your top to reveal your tummy before digging his fingers into your sides and tickling you all over, you thrashing and gasping for air as you laughed loudly and tried to get away from him, him stuffing his face in your neck and nibbling obnoxiously.
âiâm sorry! please stop! gumiâ eeekkk!â
âno.â
âiâll doâ iâll do anything!ââ
âno.â
you giggled and gasped. âgummmiiii!ââ
days like this with you were megumiâs greatest days.
he didnât need anything else. just you and your giggles and your smiles, your sweetness and your talkativeness as you brightened up his life in every single aspect, coated all of its tribulations with sunshine and warmth as you proved to him everyday still how beautiful life could be if he just let it.
and as ludicrous as the party was with bamboo shots and cheerleaders, tiki bars and shitfaced players and certain individuals literally trying to pull you both apart⊠you still loved it. an experience you were glad that you shared with together and barely had to make the effort to talk about and fix because there was nothing to fix.
you and megumi always understood each other, two souls on the same wavelength that ebbed and flowed in the same direction and in the same form alwaysâ a privilege that you never once clashed against each other so much so that it destroyed the natural flow of your currents.
because this sea was much different than the dark and torturous one he was in by himself all those yearsâ the one he was in before he met you.
this one was sparkling and crystal blue, luke warm to the touch and fun as he didnât mind the saltiness of it getting into his eyes, because somehow it never burned when it did, resolving itself quickly and gently and the waves themselves never making him feel like he couldnât breathe but alive instead, and all while swimming and nurturing it kindly with you as he made sure that you never got tired or unhappy with itâ never got tired or unhappy with him.
and all of that was a definite promiseâ resembled in the ring that sat pretty on your finger.
to look after you. to support you. to love you.
to make you happy.
always.
taglist!! <33 (THANK YOU THANK YOU!):
@cupcaketeddybehr @soobiary @roachfun @waterfal-ling @saebaey @reneinii @luvvmae @cake-with-the-cream @pixie-dix @hy3phiren @fushigurioo @wil10wthetree @jameinfrau @pancakeszs @k0z3me @k4zivy @dindjarins1ut @starrnai @stilettoheelz @iloveoldermenn @dazqa @applepi25 @aria-chikage @rose-tinted-kalopsia @runfrme @unofficialsapphire @dee-writes-anime @megumisluciouslashes @peachyaeger @yourstru1y4ever @yoonights @skendos @babylambdietcoke @yunstarz @dinomdubs @kalulakunundrum @s777athv @sugoroo @wastednightsonyou @miri222 @jayawaya @dazailover4ever @courtneedsleep @kcch-ns @halovianembrace @rhaitanis @kayamor @mirophobic @aylinnhealsformeow @zeesturniolo @arionater
#jjk#jujutsu kaisen#yuta okkotsu#gojo satoru#jjk fanfic#jjk x you#geto suguru#geto suguru x reader#gojo satoru x reader#jjk fluff#megumi fluff#jjk megumi#jujutsu megumi#jujutsu kaisen megumi#megumi fushiguro#megumi x you#megumi x reader#megumi x y/n#fushiguro#jjk fushiguro#jjk yuji#yuji itadori#gojo x you#gojo x reader#jjk gojo#yuji x reader#nanami kento#choso kamo#gojo x y/n#jjk x reader
5K notes
·
View notes
Text
pornstar!satoru and pornstar!suguru managing to talk you into letting them both fuck you at the same time on filmâa double penetration scene.
apparently, after a few... lewd images of the three of you together were leaked by a blue-eyed attention whore who swears he didn't mean to edit, upload and caption them before posting them on his main twitter, your combined audiences have started begging for video content of the three of you. and what better than a filthy threesome to spark the flame of your three-way-affairs?
it's how you end up riding suguru, feeling his cock so deep inside of you that you swear he's in your stomach. your hands find purchase on his muscled pecs as you ride him to the brink of orgasm; sweat coats your skin, his too, and as it is with suguru, your moans aren't played up for the sake of porn: they're raw and real and so loud as he encourages your sounds with a finger circling over your clit.
those at home watching the pair of you, only one hand free as they stroke or finger or rub themselves in time with each thrust of Suguru's hips up into you, are all met with the sight of satoru walking into frame. cock hard and big and at attention as he climbs onto the bed behind you and takes a few moments to kiss at your neck, reach around and play with your bouncing tits.
how he teases you with his words, whispers them into you ear with full knowledge that the cameras microphone wont pick up on his words. there's no production crew this time around, no directors forcing a position or calling for breaks and ruining the building tension in your already coiled stomach.
"gonna fuck this pretty ass so deep, see if i can feel sugu through you hm? you want that?"
and his word already have you on edge, all you think you can manage is a moan of approval and the slightest nod of your head, but satoru grabs your chin and guides your gaze to the camera. "say you want it, say you want me."
"iâfuckâi want you, toru. want you to fuck my ass while i ride suguru."
the domesticity, the sweet nicknames you wouldn't have said on film if you were half as aware of the world around youâit's a lot for poor satoru to handle, what with how hard his cock is, how it's already leaking so much precum onto the sheets beneath you. he can barely still your hips for long enough to work himself into your ass, and the stretch of him is enough to push you forward and on top of suguru.
you're given a moment to adjust, a full minute of stillness to catch your breath and acclimate to the overwhelming fullness you feelâthe weird way you feel whole, and the inevitable loss you'll feel once this is over. the moment is also given to stop the poor boys from cumming all too quickly. suguru can feel satoru pulsing inside of you, and satoru swears he can feel suguru's cock twitch. you squeeze around the both of them, test their resolve with a simple roll of the hips, and then choke on your spit when they both start thrusting in tandem with each other. hard and fast and mean and all at once.
it's blinding, the pleasure you feel all of a sudden.
suguru is strong and domineering with his hands on your hips and his cock nestled deep in your pussyâhe thrusts his hips up, matches satoru's unkind pace in such a way you're sure you'll be unable to walk the next way. gorgeous praise slips from his lips as you hold eye contact with himâyou're surely a mess, fucked stupid by two men at once.
satoru is eager and manic in the way he takes your ass. his hands perched on suguru's thighs as he ruts into you over and over in chase of a climax he knows is going to be unearthly. he'd praise you if he could, but all that spills from his mouth are incoherent babbles of pleasure that would make anyone listening think that he's the one being impaled on his almost too-large cock.
they work so well togetherâyour pleasure seems to be the one thing they consistently agree on. you don't even have the mind to worry about the video length with how fast you're reaching orgasm, dragging the boys with you as you shake between them, wracked with pleasure so overwhelming you're nearly in tears.
it's a clip that gets shared on every porn site and blog known to man. of you, a fucked out mess between two lust-struck men each cumming inside of you at the exact same time your own orgasm crests.
the clenching of suguru's stomach as he bucks up into you, natural instincts rolling his cock as deep as possible as he empties his balls inside of you.
the way satoru tilits his head back, jaw tight and hair a mess as he forgets how to breathe when he paints the inside of your ass with his cum.
and you, impaled on both cocks at the same time, overstimulated and shaking with the remnants of the strongest orgasm you've had in a long time, and still rolling your hips in hopes of more. another round or three, as long as you stay this full.
@medusamara5 @echodead @curiositykilledthecatx3 @hirainne
@plinkuro @sooouth @megumiiiswife @nyxiswrites1200 @yveiscringe
@sharks31 @lenahathunger @aydene @dreamyokai @n0tviv
@chiiinglebells @timetoletmyimaginationfly @nayely45 @waffless-simp-blog
@zoozvie @gothicchildofthenight @repnights @flwerie @soundofraindropss
@ushijimas1simp @aliidarling @aeswin @peachygelic @silvermet
@rinadisapproves @theshxaverse @cipher00 @milkkteary @snackeyalleyjuice
@cvipped @toadtoru @keiette @satosugu4-ever
@sugurubabe @wickedpoison6 @simp-plague @tojis-ball-sack @ventila98
@xxbookdrunkdemigodxx @oikawasthirdleg @yogichi @theycallmesia
@kdrama-anna @vurelliex @anonnieghost @tadabzzzbee
@luvofbows @crywolfix @hhonaoin @gigiiiiislife @aviesnapkindoodles
@ninikrumbs @bijuu-naginata @baekhyunsbestie @grimmshold @dalnimmie
@domainexpansionmypants @5tarx @1depressedsimp @beachaddict48 @jadeis0nline
@sukunasbbygrl @luna-v-roiya @sukunaspillow @starsval @vamqyx
@laaalaaaloooppppsiiieeeee @mermaid-jewels @sugusmonkeyy @sammywo @noyaskneepad
@astrideverstar @lordchula-thagrandrula @chuuminn @angel1of-death @flooftoof
@rumi-rants @dysphoricsanity @coolcephalopod @satoruslxt @xoxo1mira
@whosmarjj @kikosaidbye @iceddragonfruit @amisuh @lotties-ashwagandha
@veraiku @niinistudies @jexx233 @logoleptic-since-06 @kirishimasboobs
@samaraxmorgan @sweetsformysoul @uranosbaaee @angeleen777
@xixflower @dilfdicks
#im on my phone so not the typical kinktober setup#but this is day 12#jjk smut#jujutsu kaisen smut#gojo smut#satoru gojo smut#geto smut#suguru geto smut#gojo x reader#satoru gojo x reader#geto x reader#suguru geto x reader#jjk x reader#satosugu smut#satosugu x reader#kinktober 2024
6K notes
·
View notes
Text
the "it" couple
masterlist
requests are open
summary: you and Rafe being the hottest couple on the island
word count: 1.3k.
warnings: established relationship, mentions of sex, mentions of nude pictures, Rafe is reader's first everything, you're both lovesick
a/n: my obsession with soft and painfully in love Rafe is not curable at this point. but like could you imagine having him all to yourself?? ughhh the things i'd let him do to međ©
Everyone knew that there are couples that, at first glance, give you the impression that they just have really good sex. Like they are so hot and perfectly compliment each other, with a certain vibe oozing out of them, especially when they are together.Â
You and Rafe were that couple.Â
Before you started dating, no one ever considered that two polar opposites like you might even coexist. You were a kook, but still completely different from Rafe and his little gang. You were pretty, but more on the quiet side, never showing off or bothering anybody.
Rafe, on the other hand, was mean and sarcastic to everyone and everything. It was a good thing that you put him in his place the first time he talked to you, making it clear that you are not having his shit. And also making Rafe instantly interested and following you like a puppy.
You were annoyingly teasing and flirting with each other, and everyone tried not to get involved in whatever was going on. It was your first experience with a guy, because before that, nobody was really making their shots, or, at least, you never paid enough attention to notice it, choosing to focus on yourself. But with Rafe, it felt fun and so damn easy.Â
Your first kiss set everything in its place because you finally gave in to your hidden emotions. It made sense why you were always arguing and pestering each otherâyou simply craved attention from one another and it was the easiest way to get it.Â
Surprisingly, Rafeâs rough edges softened, especially around you, and he was so affectionate and craved you around him 24/7. Though, knowing that youâve never been in relationships before, he never pushed you to do anything, just following your pace.Â
But after your first time happened in the third month of dating, after the ice melted and your insecurities fully disappeared, Rafe almost got another version of his girlfriend.Â
If he thought that you couldnât be better, then he was wrong.Â
He never understood his friends who said that they had to almost beg their girlfriends to have sex, mostly because Rafe had never been in actual relationships before. But it made even less sense for him because you, seemingly, had the same energy and high sex drive as him.Â
The first few times may have been slightly awkward with you still learning and trying to understand your own body, but once you got confident, you became unstoppable.Â
Whether it was early morning, the middle of the day, or way past your bedtime, you were ready to have sex right away, straddling Rafe's legs or luring him into a kiss while your hands slipped under his pants. Â
It was crazy how much you both wanted each other. It was a perfect fucking match to have someone with exactly the same needs. You probably have been bent over every single flat surface in the house and not a single room was safe from the two of you. He wanted you all to himself and he could go hours just worshiping your body and fucking you into bliss.Â
You were almost glued together, never coming to an event alone. Rafe was so obsessed with the way you looked, with your smell, and with the feeling of your skin on his, so he always had to touch you one way or another. His friends teased him that he was absolutely pussy whipped for you and he had never denied it. They also started calling you Mrs. Cameron because you acted like a married couple and neither of you were against that nickname.
To say more, the idea of that made Rafe so feral for you, so he didnât let you get out of bed the following day. Not that you complained, though.
Rafe loved sneaking out with you. Whenever you two had to visit a gala with your families, he always snatched you from the main room to drag you to the bathroom or another hidden place to have a quickie or to burry his head under your dress because you were too hot to resist. Yeah, maybe other people noticed it, giving you their usual politely awkward smiles, but neither of you care.Â
On his birthday, you gave him the best fucking gift, which was a stack of your naked polaroid pictures. You were really nervous to do that, thinking that Rafe might react differently, but he reminded you once again why he was your perfect match. After looking through the photos several times, he literally attacked you, throwing you back on the bed and giving you the best orgasms of your life.Â
Since that day, one of the less explicit pictures of your ass has been placed in his wallet.
You were officially the âitâ couple on the island, with everyone either admiring or being jealous of that spark, which never seemed to diminish. Everyone saw the way the Rafe Cameron gave you heart eyes, soft smiles and gentle kisses. The way he held you close to himself, protecting you, taking care of you, and treating you like a queen.
Some people told you that it was only the excitement of a new relationship, but after a few years of dating, with a promise ring on your finger, it was still there. You still craved each other's touch; you still craved being together whenever it was possible, always going on dates and trips, attending all of Kookâs events, but mostly spending lazy days in your shared house. Sex was even better than beforeâmore passionate, fun, hot and full of unconditional love.
Despite the gossip on the island, Rafe didn't get âboredâ of you. No, over time, he became addicted to you because you felt like home, and there was nothing better than being with you.Â
He didn't need any other women. And he still couldn't grasp the idea of cheating. If he had you, then why on earth would he do that? Every time he came home, the best person in the world and the best sex of his life were in that exact location, so he never complained about anything.
You were his afrodisiac and whether you were in full glam, in a bikini on the beach or in his old t-shirt with messy hair, he couldnât just keep his hands to himself and not kiss the air out of you.Â
He liked how you stayed at home, doing whatever you wanted and treating yourself while he worked. You always greeted him with homemade food, but more importantly, you acted as if you had not seen him in months.
You were waiting on the porch or finishing up in the kitchen, but when you saw him, you ran and jumped into his arms and pulled him into a kiss. It always melted Rafeâs worries and bad mood away, as his shoulders sagged in relief from being in your arms again.Â
You always ended up in your bedroom, with you on or under him, while your hands were tugging at each otherâs clothes. Rafe knew that it would eventually end up with him finally putting a baby in youâsomething that more and more flooded his mindâbut for the foreseeable future, he first had to officially make you his Mrs. Cameron.
And the red box with the big ass diamond ring, which was currently sitting in the drawer, was just waiting for the perfect moment. Â
#rafe x reader#rafe cameron imagine#rafe outer banks#rafe x you#rafe fanfiction#rafe imagine#rafe fic#rafe cameron x reader#rafe obx#rafe cameron fluff#rafe cameron fic#rafe cameron fanfiction#rafe cameron x you#obx rafe cameron#rafe cameron x female reader
4K notes
·
View notes
Note
What would Arcane characters call their partner? What pet/nicknames would they use?
AHHHH THIS IS SO CUTE! Thank you anon :3
Synopsis: A lot of little cut scenarios where arcane characters call you by cute pet names!
Characters: Sevika, Vander, Silco, Caitlyn, Ekko, Viktor
((awkward Ekko x reader, Teasing Viktor x reader (he calls you an airheadâŠ))
Warning: Angst for Silco, called you âPetâ but ends with comfort!
Not proofread
Sevika
Nicknames for you: Darling, Dear, Sweet thing, Babe, Dove.
Okay maybe Iâm over sentimental but imagine her calling you Dove because you bring her so much peace in life. So youâre quite literally her little peace dove.
Sevika leaned against the bar, her mechanical arm resting on the counter as she watched you move around the room. It wasn't anything special-just you tidying up after a long day-but to her, it was everything. "You know," she started, her voice low and gravelly, "you've got this way of makin' the world feel... quieter."
You paused, glancing at her with a small smile. "Yeah? That a good thing?"
She smirked, pushing off the bar to walk toward you. "It's a damn miracle, is what it is. You don't know what it's like Dove⊠how loud it gets up here." She tapped her temple with a finger, her gaze softening. "But then you show up, and it's like everything just... stops."
Your cheeks warmed at the sincerity in her voice, but you kept your focus on folding a stray cloth. "I didn't think I was doing anything special."
Sevika snorted, stepping closer. "That's the thing. You don't even try, and still... you're it for me. My peace. My little Dove."
Vander
Nicknames for you: Peach, Love, Sweet Pea, Darling, Sunshine, Lass/Lad.
The Last Drop was unusually quiet. The usual clatter of mugs and background chatter of conversation was replaced by the occasional cough or sniffle from the makeshift beds spread around the common room. Powder, Mylo, Claggor, and Vi lay bundled in blankets, their fevered faces flushed as they sipped the herbal tea Vander had brewed.
"Peach," Vander called softly, his deep voice cutting through the stillness as he approached you. You were perched on a low stool, dabbing a cool cloth against Powder's forehead. He knelt beside you, resting his broad hand on your shoulder. "You've been fussin' over them all day. Why don't you take a break, huh? Let me handle things for a while."
"I'm fine," you said, though your hands trembled slightly as you wrung out the cloth."They need us."
He tilted his head, giving you that steady, knowing look of his. "And I need you to take care of yourself, Peach. You're no good to anyone if you run yourself into the ground."
Powder stirred, her small hand reaching out to grab yours. "Don't go," she mumbled, her voice weak.
You smoothed her hair back, glancing at Vander. "See? They need me."
Vander sighed, his lips twitching into a faint smile despite himself. "Stubborn as ever," he muttered. "Alright, Peach. We'll do this together, then."
Silco
Nicknames for you: Darling, Precious, lovely, Pet, Beloved.
After Jinxâs fiasco over at Topside it was obvious Silco was more than simply stressed.
In fact tension in the room was palpable, suffocating as it weighed down on your chest. Silco's piercing gaze bore into you, his lips pressed into a thin line. You'd overstepped-at least, in his mind-and now his sharp tongue was letting you know it.
"Stay out of matters you don't understand, pet," he snapped, the word cutting and cold as it left his mouth.
You flinched, the sting of his words settling deep. Your jaw clenched, and you refused to meet his gaze, instead focusing on the cracked edge of the table.
âI wasâI was only thinking about Jinx.â You gulped down the bile that burned in your throat. âTemporary keeping her from missions is keeping her safe.â You spoke finally looking up at him with your wet pathetic eyes.
The silence that followed was deafening. Silco's breath hitched as he realized what he'd said, the regret settling in almost immediately. His tone had been cruel, and the look on your face drove a pang of guilt through his chest.
âI apologizeâŠâ he said softly, his voice no longer harsh. "That was... uncalled for." He spoke as he stood up, fixing his cuffs as he walks over towards you.
Silco stepped closer until he was within arm's reach. "I shouldn't have said that. You didn't deserve it," he murmured, his voice low and steady. âYou mean too much to me for me to speak to you that way."
When you still didn't respond, he hesitated for a moment before tilting your chin up with his gloved fingers, forcing your eyes to meet his mismatched ones.
"Forgive me," he whispered, his tone sincere. "You are not my pet. You are my beloved. The only one who stands beside me, who understands me."
Caitlyn
Nicknames for you: Petal, Cheeky one, Muffin, Trouble, Dearest.
Flour completely dusted the countertop and your face as you tried to knead the dough. Caitlyn stood across from you, her sleeves rolled up, an amused smile playing on her lips.
"Petal," she said, tilting her head, "you're supposed to knead it, not wrestle it."
You huffed, brushing flour from your cheek. âIt's sticking to my hands! Iâm not sure how else Iâm supposed to tackle this.â
Caitlyn chuckled and walked over, gently taking your hands in hers. "Here, let me show you." She guided your movements, her hands warm and steady.
When the dough finally started to cooperate, you couldn't resist smearing a bit of flour on her cheek. She froze, then slowly raised an eyebrow. âTrouble," she murmured, her voice teasing.
You grinned, backing away. "You love it."
Her soft laugh filled the kitchen as she grabbed a handful of flour. "Oh, I do. But you're not getting away with that."
Ekko
Nicknames for you: Firefly, Sugar, babe, baby, Cutie
You sat on a spinning chair in ekkoâs workshop mindlessly spinning while watching him work. He was trying to fix a circuit board, but his focus seemed to drift in your direction. You caught him glancing at you a few times, his brow furrowed as though he was thinking of something important.
After a moment of silence, Ekko cleared his throat, his usual confidence wavering slightly. He set down his tools and looked at you with a small smile, hands shoved into his pockets. "Hey, uh... can I tell you something?" he asked, voice a little too casual.
You raised an eyebrow at his sudden and strange behavior. "Sure. What's up?"
He scratched the back of his neck, avoiding your gaze. "Well, I've been meaning to call you something... I dunno, it's just, uh, you're always so sweet, you know?" He glanced up at you briefly, cheeks turning faintly pink. âSo, I was thinking... Sugar?"
There was a long, awkward pause. You blinked, processing the nickname, unsure how to respond. "Sugar?" you repeated, a small smile tugging at the corners of your lips. "Really?"
Ekko's face reddened even more. "Yeah, I mean-because, uh, you're sweet... like sugar? You know?" He shrugged, clearly flustered now. "It's not like, weird, right?"
You couldn't help it you laughed, the sound light and teasing, but not unkind. "I don't know, Ekko. It's a bit... unexpected," you said, still grinning.
His gaze shifted, suddenly looking embarrassed. "Okay, okay, I get it. That was dumb, huh? Just trying to be smooth, but I guess it's not my thing." He shifted uncomfortably.
against his arm, your smile softening. "It's cute," you said, voice warm. "But I think you can do better."
He met your eyes, a sheepish grin finally breaking through his awkwardness. "Yeah? You think so?âŠWell, I'll keep working on it then."
Viktor
Nicknames for you: Beautiful, Trinket, Dearest, Cheeky, Airhead, Sweetling.
You were fiddling with a complicated piece of tech, the gears and wires all tangled in a way that made your focus drift. Viktor stood beside you, watching with a raised eyebrow as you muttered to yourself.
"Careful, darling," he teased with a sly smile, his voice smooth and mature. "An airhead might break something important."
You shot him a playful glare, a little flustered. âI'm not an airhead! BesidesâŠI'm working on it!" you said, trying to hide the embarrassment in your voice.
Viktor chuckled, reaching over and gently fixing the wires with practiced hands. His tone softened as he met your gaze. "I didn't mean it, Sweetling. You're far from an airhead. You just... get a little lost in your thoughts sometimes." He smiled warmly. âAnd I think it's kind of endearing."
You felt your heart warm at his change in tone, the teasing replaced by something far more tender. "Geez thanks, Viktor." You pouted and sighed out quietly.
He smiled and chuckled softly, his hand now brushing against yours. "Anything for you, Sweetling."
HOPE YOU GUYS LIKED IT<3 thanks so much for all the support on my last post :>
FEEL FREE TO LEAVE A REQUEST AND COMMENT IF YOU ENJOYED IT! (I love reading comments and any feedback!)
#arcane imagines#viktor arcane#viktor x reader#arcane x you#arcane fic#ekko x reader#arcane x reader#caitlyn kiramman#caitlyn arcane#arcane fanfic#caitlyn x reader#league of legends caitlyn#league of legends x reader#arcane silco#silco#silco x reader#silco fanfic#silco x you#sevika#sevika x reader#sevika x you#sevika x y/n#sevika arcane#vander#vander arcane#vander x reader#vander x you#vander x y/n#arcane imagine#arcane fluff
2K notes
·
View notes
Text
Deliverance
summary: following your nephew's death, you find aemond in need of comfort. as his older sister, who are you to deny him?
pairing: aemond targaryen x sister!reader
warnings: mature/explicit, 18+ (minors dni!), no use of y/n, afab reader, canon typical incest, mentioned canon death, infidelity technically but reader's husband is cool with it and understands that she comes from a weirdo family cough cough incest cough, lactation kink, hurt/comfort, piv sex, unprotected sex, cockwarming, titty sucking, angst but happy ending, otto cameo ew, let me know if i missed anything!
word count: 7.4k
a/n: *slams fist on table* i need for him to suck on my boobie
likes, comments, & reblogs are very appreciated but never required!
gif creds to @feodor-dostoevsky
đŠmy masterlist
đadd yourself to my taglist to be notified when i post new fics!
âShall I fetch Maester Orwyle once we return to your chambers, Princess?â Your handmaiden, Edyth, questions as the two of you make your way up one of the many winding staircases in the Red Keep â each step making you wince.Â
âYes, please,â you sigh, ever grateful that she had always seemed to have a knack for predicting your requests before you had the chance to voice them, âPerhaps tell him to prepare some of the same soothing balm he gave to Helaena?âÂ
âOf course, Princess,â Edyth nods, a small smile tugging at the corners of her lips, ever the optimist, âI believe it should help with your aches, I remember it seemed to help the Queen afterâŠâ She trails off, breath hitching in her throat.
A heavy silence seems to fall over the two of you, the same that had been blanketing the entirety of the palace for the past few days. You swallow thickly, battling against the lump suddenly growing at the back of your throat and merely nod your head in simple understanding, offering her a tight-lipped smile, âIâm sure it will be of great help, Edyth, thank you.âÂ
Ever since⊠it had happened, the Red Keep feels as if itâs made of eggshells, like one small gust of wind could knock it right over. Everyoneâs so on edge, terrified of saying too much or too little, the wrong thing at the wrong time. The stress of it all seems nearly suffocating, though you still have a feeling the worst was yet to come.Â
Suddenly, someone calls your name from behind you and you turn, smiling once you see your grandsire striding toward you.
âA raven arrived earlier from Gwayne,â Otto explains, deep voice carrying down the empty hallway, âHeâs reached Oldtown safely, everything seems to be well there.â
âOh, wonderful,â you nod, grateful for news of your husband.
âIndeed,â he continues, âDaeron seems to be in good spirits, happy to come home; theyâre to depart tomorrow, as scheduled⊠forgive me, I meant to tell you before supper but it seems to have slipped my mind.â
âEverything has been so hectic of late, please donât trouble yourself. He arrived safely and will be back all the sooner for it, that is what matters.â
âOf course,â Otto nods, glancing out a nearby window, âIf youâll excuse me, Iâve been ordered to attend to His Grace,â he says gruffly, a wry smile on his lips, nodding in the direction of Aegonâs chambers.
You nod at the mention of your twin, brows pinching together with worry. âBe⊠patient with him, grandsire, please,â you beseech, chest heaving with a soft sigh, âI spoke with him earlier this morning, heâs⊠well, heâs not himself.â
âAre any of us anymore, I wonder,â Otto mutters, fixing you with a tight smile before taking his leave, striding quickly down the hallway. Your brows furrow at that, you canât help but throw Edyth a questioning look before the two of you continue toward your chambers.Â
âSeven Hells,â you grumble, quickly bringing a hand to your breast as you climb another, blessedly shorter, set of stairs, âPerhaps check the nursery first, yes? Daena may be stirring stillâŠâ You know better, even as the words leave your lips.Â
Your daughter has finally begun sleeping soundly through the night recently and while that is cause for celebration, you certainly wonât miss the past eight moons of late night feedings, your poor breasts are paying the price â your body not yet caught up with the lessened need for milk.Â
âYes, Princess,â Edyth replies with a little nod, walking alongside you.
The two of you are almost at your chambers, finally turning onto the hallway where the family apartments are housed, when you hear it â a muffled, barely there cry. The sound makes you pause in your tracks, head swiveling, unsure of exactly where it came from and itâs then you notice that the door to Aemondâs chambers is ajar.Â
That in and of itself is strange indeed, your little brother valued privacy above all else, so you stride over only to pause at the entrance, hand poised midair as you reach for the door handle. Your heart clenches when another soft sob pierces the quiet of the hallway â a mournful little noise, one youâd expect more from Aegon.Â
Turning back to Edyth, you lead her a few feet from the door, knowing Aemond would hate it if he knew someone, anyone aside from you, had overheard him. âGo to the nursery,â you instruct, making sure to keep your voice low, âMake sure Daena is well, then youâre free for the evening.âÂ
âBut, princess, what about ââ
âNevermind it,â you murmur with a shake of your head, âIâll send for the maester later myself.â
With a nod, she scampers off further down the hallway, leaving you alone by your brotherâs door. Stepping back over toward the threshold, you bite at your bottom lip, wondering if you should go in at all â if it would be more merciful to simply pretend you hadnât heard anything at all.Â
But then it happens again, another pitiful sob sounds from beyond the cracked door and youâre unable to help yourself â Aemond had always come to you with his troubles when he was younger, surely now would be no different. With a little breath, you push the door open just enough to slip through it and thank whichever Gods may be listening when youâre able to press it closed with hardly a sound.Â
Peeking around the screen your brother has beside the door, it feels as if your heart shatters in your chest. He looks so⊠small, so fragile, the complete opposite of the towering, formidable man heâd become in recent years. Itâs clear he didnât hear you come in as he stays seated in a chair near the door, his back to you; his shoulders shake with gentle cries while he hunches over, head cradled in his hands.Â
The disarray of his normally spotless chambers startles you once you let your eyes flit over the space â papers are strewn about all across the low table he keeps in the little sitting area, some scattered across the floor, crumpled up, or ripped to pieces. His bedsheets are halfway ripped from the bed and lie in a pool at its foot, along with the remnants of a candle, now merely a translucent puddle on the dark stone floor.Â
Taking a step forward, you softly call his name, trying your hardest to keep your voice as low and soft as possible, though youâre hardly able to get the first syllable out before he bolts up from the chair with a strangled gasp and spins toward you.Â
âOh, Aem,â the words fall past your lips in a soft sigh, pulled from you by the startled expression on his face â eyes wide with the fear of being caught so vulnerable. His sapphire eye seems to sparkle with just as much emotion as his pale purple one.Â
âSister, I ââ He starts, hastily wiping his hands over his cheeks, chest heaving while he tries to calm his harsh breaths, but youâll have none of that.
âShh, whatever excuses you have, Iâll not hear them,â you murmur, quickly walking the few feet over to him and enveloping him in a tight embrace, just as you used to do when he would come crying to you about the tortures Aegon or your nephews put him through in their youth.
Your brother stays stiff in your arms for a moment, tense and wary, though he slowly relaxes as you rub a hand over his back, smoothing out his long hair. You yourself relax once he finally winds his long arms around you and rests his chin on your shoulder with a soft sigh, the tension in his shoulders finally releasing.Â
âTell me what distresses you so?â
âI⊠Jaeâ the boy,â he stammers, stumbling over his name. You understand, just saying your little nephewâs name seems to somehow make the pain of the loss even worse. Yet, something in your gut tells you thereâs something else going on, that Jaehaerysâs death is not the only thing causing your brother such anguish.
âAemondâŠâ you gently press, bringing a hand up to cup his cheek as you pull back just enough to meet his gaze, âI cannot help if you wonât tell meââ
âTell you what?â He counters, tone growing too defensive too quickly, âMy nephewâs death brings me sorrow, sister. The loss of a young child is a⊠distressing thing.â
âYou know thatâs not what I mean!â You counter, trying desperately to keep your voice calm, even when Aemond backs away from you with an exasperated sigh. Youâre no stranger to this game â ever since he lost his eye, your brother has guarded his emotions carefully. Getting him to speak honestly about them was about as hard as keeping a bottle of Dornish wine from Aegonâs grasp.Â
He gives you a sidelong glance as he paces about the room, lips pressed into a thin line, jaw clenched. Worry only blooms brighter in your chest the longer you watch him; so agitated and so guarded, closed off like an abused animal.Â
âIt⊠itâs nothing,â he mumbles finally, voice short and clipped, âNothing important, sister, I assure you.â
Unconsciously, you wring your hands worriedly, heart clenching; you want nothing more than to reach out and comfort him, yet you know from experience that it was better to let Aemond come to you.Â
âWell, surely it cannot be nothing if it has upset you so, sweetling.âÂ
His nervous pacing comes to a screeching halt at that and he squeezes his eye shut, fists clenched at his side â his whole body tense like heâs trying desperately to keep some invisible dam within himself closed.Â
You reach a hand up instinctively when he bites at his bottom lip and turns his head away from you, shoulders shaking with silent sobs. âIâ,â he croaks, the tightness in his voice makes your breath hitch in your throat; every maternal cell in your body is screaming at you, pleading with you to hold him, âI donât w-wish to burden you.â
âBaby brother,â you sigh, finally going to him, practically running the few feet over to where he stands. Your arms encircle him instantly, pulling him into a tight embrace â one hand rubs over his back while the other cups the back of his head, holding his face against the crook of your neck, âYou could never be a burden to me, never.â
That seems to break him and he gasps, breathing warm against your neck, before he finally lets go and his shoulders heave with sobs while his hands cling to you desperately, fisting into the fabric of your gown like heâs afraid youâll disappear. A tightness grows at the back of your own throat, not used to seeing him be this raw, this open, in what feels like lifetimes. It breaks your heart to think heâd been holding all of this in, determined to be the strong, silent soldier like everyone expected, while he dealt with such sadness all alone.Â
âShh, shh, Aemond, youâre okay,â you murmur gently, eyes widening when he sags against you, his knees giving way only for a second. âHere, come,â you instruct, taking one of his hands in yours and leading him to the small seating area in his chambers. You urge him to sit on the sofa he has there before joining him yourself, a bit surprised when he all but throws himself against you again â practically laying his head in your lap as he sobs, cheek pressed against your chest in a way that makes you wince from the tenderness still there, not that youâd ever scold him for it.Â
âThere, thatâs much better, hm? Comfortable?â You ask, simply trying to draw him back to the surface.Â
He doesnât reply, something that doesnât really come as a shock to you given how harsh his cries are, leaving him breathless against you. Deciding to let him get it out, you stay quiet, merely shushing him every so often as you run your fingers through his pearlescent hair.
After a long while, he seems to settle some and tears begin running down his cheeks silently rather than racking his body with savage cries; he lifts his head from your lap and rests it instead against your shoulder, gazing up at you as if youâre an angel sent from the heavens themselves. The intense tenderness with which he looks at you makes you blush, yet your brows furrow slightly at the darkness still there â lingering in the lilac of his eye.Â
âI have⊠I have done something terrible.â
Your brother's murmured confession only serves to confuse you further and you shake your head slightly, heart clenching in your chest as you silently wonder what in all the Seven Kingdoms he could possibly mean by that.Â
âAemond,â you start, knowing not to pry â to let him tell you, âThere is nothing you could ever do that would make me think any less of you.â
He stares up at you for a long moment, eye flicking across your face like heâs checking for even the barest hint of deception, yet he finds none â your words are true.Â
âYou⊠promise me you will not hate me.â
âI promise, sweet brother,â your brows pinch together at his words, wondering what could possibly be bad enough for all this, yet you canât stop the corners of your lips from quirking into a sad smile at his request; that uncertain lilt in his voice reminds you so much of when he was younger, âThereâs nothing you could do that would make me hate you. Nothing.â
âIâŠâ He starts, pulling away from you as he sits up, sparing you one last glance before staring off into the fireplace, âI am the⊠the reason Jaehaerys is dead.â
âWhat?â The word is pressed from you, leaving your lips as little more than a breath. You stare at him as if heâd sprouted a second head, utterly perplexed. How in the Seven Hells could he have ever arrived at that conclusion? Taking one of his hands in yours, you lean a little closer, âSweetling, what in the world do you mean?â
âThey were here for me,â Aemond rasps, wincing as if the words themselves are painful, clawing at his throat on their way out, âThey were⊠Gods, they were sent for me and â and when they couldnât find me, they⊠H-He died because I was not here, because they could not f-find meâŠâ
âOh, my love,â you sigh, the backs of your eyes stinging as he presses himself against you again, tucking his head into the crook of your neck, âAemond, you couldnât have known, none of us did. You couldnât have knownâŠâ You repeat, like saying the words again and again will make him believe them.Â
âI s-should have,â he whimpers, voice breaking over a sob, âI shouldâve k-known, I shâshouldâve been hereâŠâ
You hold him tightly, practically hauling him onto your lap as his tears leak over your skin, running into the valley of your cleavage like a river, though you pay it no mind. âShh, sweetling, shh,â you murmur and press a soft kiss to his forehead, âItâs not your fault, dear one, itâs no oneâs fault but the vile men who took him and our⊠our coward of a sister who ordered it done.â
He stays silent for a moment and you can feel the gears in his brain turning, working furiously as he tries to internalize your words, wanting desperately to believe them but unable to let himself. You sigh softly when you feel him shake his head against you, so determined to cling to guilt.Â
âIf⊠if I had n-not been at theâŠâÂ
âAt the where, brother?â You press, clinging to anything you may be able to use to shift the conversation.Â
â...The brothelâŠâ he mumbles after a long pause, the words so muffled against the column of your neck that you have to strain to hear them. His words shock you, the complete opposite of anything youâd been expecting. You try your hardest not to let that show, even as a strange sense of jealousy wells up within you â a sense of possessiveness youâve always felt for your little brother.
âWell, you⊠you are a man grown, my love,â you heart hammers in your chest, loud enough that you wonder if he can hear it, âIf you wish to lay withââ
âI didnât⊠Iââ He stammers, clinging to you tightly as he shakes his head, an urgency in his voice you canât quite place, âThatâs not what, I⊠I mean, Iââ
âNo matter,â you cut him off, aching to see him so distressed, âWhatever you do there, sweet brother, itâs your⊠right to do it.â You struggle to get the words out, the sense of protectiveness rising viciously in your chest makes your throat feel tight.Â
He lifts his head from your shoulder again and eyes you for a long moment â for what, you arenât sure. Itâs almost like heâs surprised not to be meant with disgust or contempt; you wish you knew why.
âIt doesnât matter,â he finally mumbles, glancing away from you, ashamed, âI shouldâve been home⊠I shouldâve been here to protect my family.â
âAemond, please,â you sigh and sit up slightly, moving to cup his cheeks in your hands, wiping at his tears with your thumb, âIt is not your job to protect us, we have guards for a reason⊠if anything, this atrocity is their fault but it is not yours, do you understand?â Your eyes bore into his as you speak, desperate to make him understand, to rid him of this misplaced guilt.Â
âDo⊠do you still love me?â He asks after a long moment, voice so timid, so meek like heâs already preparing himself for your rejection, that it makes your heart twist horribly in your chest.Â
Still, you cannot help but huff out a little laugh, lips lifting into a sad smile at the utter ridiculousness of the question. âYou are my dearest brother,â you murmur, leaning forward to press a kiss against his forehead, letting your lips linger on his skin for a second, âOf course, I still love you, Aemond. I have loved you from the moment you came into this world and I shall never, never stop â the Gods themselves could not make me.â
The two of you are quiet for a moment, save for a small hum from your brother as he nods. His arms encircle you again and selfishly, you enjoy it â being this close to him again, like he was a little boy once more. Heâd been all but attached to you at the hip before that dreadful night, following you about the Keep and telling you all sorts of tales about various histories of the Realm in that sweet voice of his.Â
All of that had stopped that night and, at first, you had assumed that he merely thought himself a man grown afterwards â a man who had finally claimed a dragon, a man who no longer needed comfort from an older sibling. The sadness in his voice when he speaks again, muffled against your shoulder, tells you otherwise.
âMother doesnât love me anymore,â his voice is flat and detached as he breathes out the words, like heâs informing you of some tragic, unavoidable accident.Â
âAem, of course she does. She loves you veryââ
âNo,â he cuts you off, sitting up once more and shaking his head, âEver since that business with Luke, I⊠she can hardly bring herself to look at me. She wonât speak to me outside of Small Council meetings and even then she tries not to, âtis plain to see.â
You open your mouth to say something, anything, but nothing comes, leaving you to swallow around the lump that grows at the back of your throat once again. What are you to say? Heâs⊠Gods, bless him, heâs right, youâve seen as much to know.Â
âYou are the only one who has never abandoned me,â he starts, eye sparkling in the candlelight as tears begin welling up within it once more, âEveryone else has left.â
âThatâs notâŠâ Your voice fades as you sigh, knowing that arguing with him now will do no good. Instead, you simply hold him tighter and brush a few stray locks of hair from his face. âI can promise that I shall never leave you, sweet brother.â
He grows quiet for a moment, slumping down against you until his head rests in your lap and his body curls up onto the sofa. Silently, you resist the urge to cradle him, to hold him against you as you do Daena when she wakes from a nap with a start, crying out from her cradle.Â
He is a grown man, you remind yourself, yet it does nothing to stop the strange ache in your heart.Â
âThey all used to taunt me, surely you remember, when we were younger,â he mumbles, eye fixated on the fire crackling in the hearth, even as he clings to you, âFirst for not having a dragon, then for not having an eye.â
You hum in affirmation â you do remember it, sadly. You remember it all very well; he had slept in your chambers for a week after the incident with the pig, not wanting to be left alone at night with the memories of it. You remember having to hold him back at the table when Aegon had poked fun at his eyepatch during supper, about a month after his eye had been gouged out.Â
You remember that night too, when heâd come to you with tearful apologies, murmuring sorries again and again for accidentally nicking your hand while trying to brandish a knife against his brother.Â
âI have always been an outcast.â
A smile tugs at the corners of your lips despite the circumstances and you sigh softly, brushing your fingers through his long strands of hair, âI quite like you being different⊠perhaps if you werenât, we wouldnât be as close, hm?â
Aemond goes quiet at that, stills in your lap with a little sigh before simply burrowing against you even more, curling in on himself tighter.Â
A soft coo leaves your lips, strands of his long hair passing between your fingers like silk. âWhat say you stay with me tonight, yes?â You offer, the thought of him in the dark carrying all this alone grief makes you feel ill, âWe could even cuddle, if you like? Just as we did when you were younger.â
A short beat of silence later, all you get is a little, âYes, please,â mumbled against your abdomen.Â
âI donât deserve you,â he murmurs later, the two of you finally lying together atop your bed, cuddled closely against one another just as youâd promised. Youâd each taken time to get ready for bed and Aemond seems a little better for it, no longer as distressed and teary now that heâs had the time to collect himself.Â
Your hand carefully cups the side of his face that isnât pressed against your pillow, that isnât buried in the crook of your neck, as an astonished huff of laughter escapes your lips as they curve into a sad smile, your brows furrowed. âWhy in the world would you think such things?â Even as the question is whispered into the quiet of your chambers, you know the answer â Aemond has always been this way, always one to reject comfort, even when it is so freely given, even when he himself seeks it out.Â
If only he could see himself as you do.Â
âI⊠I have done so many shameful things, sister, IâŠâ His voice breaks when he cuts himself off and you can feel him tense in your hold, ââTis the simple truth, I donât deserve you.â
You hum softly, combing your fingers through his hair while you mull over his words, silently wondering why he has always been like this â why you have always felt so unworthy of softness and kindness and love.Â
âWell, it is not my truth,â you murmur after a moment, eyes flicking over the long line of his body, hidden by your silken bedsheets. In the time each of you had taken to ready yourselves for bed, you had changed into a nightgown and he into a simple nightshirt, leaving your bare legs to tangle together, âWould you like to know what I think, my love?â
You feel him inhale against the crook of your neck, sucking in air like heâs steeling himself for disappointment, yet he still lifts his head and peers up at you. His lilac eye searches your face for a long moment, looking for even the smallest indication of displeasure in your features, only to find none.Â
Seemingly satisfied with his assessment, assured that surely whatever you were to say would not hurt him too badly, he nods.Â
Sitting up just enough to better see his face, you look at him with nothing but adoration as the two of you rest shoulder to shoulder, backs against the headboard. âI believe you deserve every kindness in the world, Aemond. And I believe even that would be too little,â your voice is hardly a whisper when you speak, like this is the deepest of secrets meant only for his ears, âYou deserve nothing but happiness, sweet baby brother.â
He stares at you for a long moment, eye wide and glassy while his chest aches as your words seep into him like a soothing balm. You can see his Adamâs apple bob in his throat as he swallows, eye squeezing shut for a moment while he processes your words â so sweet they nearly stung.Â
A soft coo bubbles from your lips when you see his chest rise and fall rapidly beneath the linen of his nightshirt, and you lean into him all the more when one of his hands reaches out and grabs one of your own, squeezing it like itâs a lifeline.Â
âShh,â you soothe, giving him a sad smile when his eye finally opens again, gaze immediately finding yours, âSweet boy.â
He lets out a shuddering breath before looking away from you once again, mind reeling. Not knowing what to do, overcome with so much emotion his heart feels as if itâs adrift at sea, he brings your hand up and presses a soft kiss against your knuckles before holding it to his cheek and sucking in another little breath as his bottom lip trembles. âPlease donât ever leave me,â he whispers finally, voice tight and hoarse.Â
Cupping his face, you caress your thumb over the scar beneath his eye softly and lean over just enough to press a soft kiss against his cheek. âI will never leave you, Aemond, I swear it.â
He shudders once more before letting out a shaky breath, eye filled with a wild desperation. Before you can register the movement, his hands are suddenly gripping at your waist and hauling you onto his lap, your legs on either side of his, as he buries his face into the crook of your neck once more, apologies already muffled against your skin. âI-Iâm sorry, I â Gwayne will⊠will hate me but ââ
âShh, sh, sh, sweetling,â you murmur, despite the small, barely audible gasp that leaves you at the sudden movement, so wholly unused to this as half of you tries desperately to comfort you while the other half wonders if you should put a stop to this, âGwayne knows, my love, he⊠itâs okay, he knows.â
A sob is wrenched from Aemondâs lips, warm against your neck, but he nods nonetheless, sighing when you begin carding your fingers through his hair once more, smoothing out the long, pale strands. Slowly, he relaxes again, arms wound securely around your waist while his breath evens out.Â
Youâre about to say something else, though your breath hitches in your throat when he begins peppering your neck with soft, chaste little kisses â feather-light down the column of your neck. He stops after a second, noticing you tense up on his lap, eyes wide as a million thoughts swirl in your mind: Is this okay? Should you stop this? This is your precious baby brother, the one who used to cling to your skirts when he was sad, who used to come to you in the night when he woke from a nightmareâŠÂ
He leans forward once more and nips at your earlobe, making your heart stutter in your chest, âCan⊠can I try something?â
Your head reels at the sudden change in his touches, needier now, though for an entirely different reason, yet still your mind reels â piqued with curiosity. âWhat is it you wish to try?â You question after a moment, voice scratchy from the sudden dryness at the back of your throat.Â
Silently, Aemond relishes this; something about you, you his normally strong and carefree older sister, being this flustered because of him makes his heart flutter in his chest. Dipping his head, he resumes pressing soft kisses against your skin, though they linger now â teeth nipping before he soothes the small bites with a swipe of his tongue, drawing ever closer to the pulse point in your neck that beats so wildly he can feel it beneath your skin.Â
âAemond!â You all but wheeze when he suddenly grabs at your hips, his own firmly bucking up against you. A shock goes down your spine at the evidence of his arousal pressing against you, two thin layers of fabric doing precious little to mask the feel of it. Again, you tense up, practically jumping out of your skin as you pull back just enough to gaze down at him, your eyes wide, blinking rapidly, as they search his.Â
This was the last thing you expected tonight, the last thing youâd expect from him at all. âWha â IâŠâ You stammer, dumbstruck while worry and uncertainty cloud your mind.Â
Aemond shushes you now, long fingers squeezing at your bare thighs now that your nightgown has ridden up enough to reveal them. âItâs alright, itâs alright,â he murmurs, rubbing his thumbs soothingly against your skin, âDo you trust meâŠ?â
Your throat bobs as you swallow thickly, heart hammering in your chest. You should be the one comforting him⊠what in the Seven Hells has happened? Is⊠is this the comfort he needs now?
Even still, you nod your head at his question; of course you trust him, youâd trust him with anything⊠even this.Â
A smile grows on his lips when you acquiesce, a pleased glimmer in his eye when he lifts his hands to your hips again, his grip firmer this time. âGood⊠good, sweet sister,â he hums lowly, rutting his hips up against you once more, lilac eye watching you with keen interest.Â
âA-AemâŠâ You gasp once more, the feel of him against you so intense it sends a shiver down your spine, even when your brows furrow as your eyes flutter, threatening to slip shut. His movements press a small whimper from your lips and you can feel the sting in your cheeks as they flush, chest heaving while your hands grab tightly at his shoulders.Â
The smug look on his face slowly morphs into one of wonder and his eye flits over your face greedily, like he doesnât want to miss a single second of seeing you like this â already so strung out over him.Â
He moves again, the feeling of your soft core pressing against his growing length through the thin linen only serving to drive his urges further. âGods, you look so beautiful like thisâŠâ He murmurs, in awe at having you like this, and all to himself. Unable to help himself, he leans forward yet again and pulls you closer as his lips settle once more against your neck.Â
Instinctually, your head tilts to the side, giving him room to kiss over your skin. His movements against you cause you to shiver in his grasp, even if a small part of you was still uncertain, hoping this wouldnât change your relationship with him for the worse.Â
The slow grind of his hips causes his nightshirt to eventually ride up his legs as well, and you gasp anew, jumping once more when his length suddenly presses against your center, unhindered by fabric.Â
âFeel what you do to me?â He purrs, letting out a low groan of his own.Â
For a moment, all you can do is stare at him, lips parted ever so slightly while your chest heaves, silently wondering if this is truly happening. Almost imperceptibly, you nod your head, shuddering at the feeling of his cock pressed against you, already twitching.Â
âL-Little brother,â you gasp, breathless already.
Aemond smirks at your response, your whimpers and soft gasps going right to his head. He grabs at your waist still, bucking against you in slow, almost teasing movements. A low, pleased hum vibrates him in his chest when he feels how wet you are against him â the heat radiating from your center nearly stifling.Â
The longer this goes on, the more you can feel your resolve crumbling, any small bits left of you that wanted to put a stop to this slowly fading away. Distantly, you canât help wondering if this is how itâs always been meant to be, if this was the only logical conclusion your paths could reach, the outcome of such a close bond. Perhaps, you have always been made for this.Â
âAemond,â his name falls from your lips in a soft sigh and you finally lean against him heavily, pressing your chest against his unthinkingly. âShit!â You gasp only a second later, jolting as if stung by a bee, brought back to reality by the ache in your breasts.Â
âSister?â Aemond questions, freezing beneath you while he looks over your face, his hands rising to cup your cheeks protectively.Â
You start to answer, to explain, when you feel a sudden tingling sensation at your chest and, judging from the look on your brotherâs face, an explanation would be a moot point by now anyway.
âGods grant me mercy,â he sighs, eye wider than youâve ever seen it as he stares, near open-mouthed, at your chest. Glancing down, your cheeks flush at the sight of milk dampening the linen at your breasts, leaving it all but translucent.Â
Again, you go to explain, only to stop yourself in your tracks when his tongue darts out, licking over his bottom lip. Your head spins when you notice his chest heaving as he stares at you with a nearly savage hunger, eyes fixed on your breasts like his universe has been narrowed down to a pinpoint.Â
âAemond?â
âPlease,â he groans, swallowing thickly and licking over his lips once more, practically salivating. His eye flicks up to yours for only the briefest of seconds before zeroing in on your chest once more, âSweet⊠sweet sister, please.â
Again, the energy in the room seems to shift, Aemond once again begging you for comfort, bowing to your whims. Quickly, you shush him while one hand threads into his hair once more as you bring his head back against the crook of your neck, settling him there while he groans against your skin, rough hands slowly trailing up your waist before halting at your ribs.Â
Your other hand busies itself with snaking between the two of you and impatiently batting your clothes away before your fingers finally curl around his length, causing the both of you to let out soft cries.Â
âShh, sweetling,â you coo, chest heaving while you position him at your entrance, sighing as he desperately mouths at your neck, âI know what you need, Iâve got you.â
Again, twin moans fill your dimly lit chambers when you slowly sink down on him. Whimpers are punched from your lungs at the feel of him steadily filling you, his chest rumbling against yours as he groans deeply, hips jolting beneath you.Â
âGods,â you sigh when your hips are finally pressed tightly against his once more, panting and letting your eyes fall shut while you give yourself a moment to adjust.Â
The feel of him borders on overwhelming â pressed so tightly inside of you, around you, the very air in your room filled with the heady, herbaceous scent of the bath oils you know he favors. You imagine he must feel the same as he trembles beneath you, fingers and hips twitching with barely contained desire.Â
Finally, your need to comfort him, to protect him even from himself, rears its head again and you relish the breathy sigh that leaves him as you begin to move your hips. Itâs a grinding motion, soft and gentle â what he needs now, to be treated with care. Still, the movements send shockwaves up your spine as the pale hairs at the base of his cock rub perfectly against your pearl, creating a delicious friction to spur you on.Â
âSo good,â he breathes, warm against your shoulder as he leans forward, kissing at your neck, âYou feel so good, sister, you⊠you are s-so good to meâŠâ
âJust as you deserve,â you murmur, combing your fingers through his long hair once more before your hands travel down to the hem of his nightshirt and you begin impatiently tugging at it, pulling it over his head and grinning at the soft, nearly petulant, whine he gives at having to separate from you even for a second.Â
Still, some instinctual force seems to drive you, a need to feel his skin against your own, and you waste no time before pulling your own nightgown up and over your head as well, leaving nothing to separate the two of you.Â
The groan that leaves him when your chest presses back against his own once more is like nothing youâve heard before â a sound of the purest relief, like heâs found some oasis in the desert. His eye opens again and the rhythm of your hips stutters only for a second once it finds yours. The lilac is almost completely overtaken by black and yet, he still regards you as if you are an angel sent from the heavens themselves, stares at you with such reverence that your heart flutters in your chest.Â
Something clicks for you then as he whimpers beneath you, his own hips beginning to buck up against your own as the lazy tempo youâve settled into slowly starts to pick up. You understand, now, that this is merely another step, an added turn, in the so carefully balanced dance the two of you have constructed.
And if this is what he needs to be comforted, then youâre more than happy to give it.Â
âMy good boy,â sigh, moving against him with renewed vigor, grinning when he lets out a hitched moan, âIs this what you needed?â
âYes, y-yes,â he nods, his eye never leaving your own as he ruts beneath you, the choppy movements only adding to the fire slowly building within your veins, âPlease, sweet sister, pleaseâŠâ
You donât need to ask to know what it is he means, nodding before he has time to stutter out another word, âTake what you need, my love.â
Another breathy groan sounds from him as he quickly descends onto your chest, tilting his head down and immediately capturing your sensitive nipple between his lips, one hand coming up to gently cup your breast, holding it steady. The feeling of relief that flows through you when he starts suckling is nearly disorienting, the dull ache in your breast slowly fading away with each mouthful of milk he pulls from you, greedily taking a few mouthfuls from one breast before switching to the other.
Your fingers stay anchored in his hair while your hips work against him, your high building more steadily within you now that your breasts no longer feel ready to burst. You pant as you gaze down at him, eyes half-lidded while you watch his lips move against you, lilac eye still fixated on you.Â
Below you, Aemond is halfway convinced heâs died and somehow the Gods have seen fit to spare him the Seven Hells. His head spins as he drinks from you, the taste of you by far the sweetest, most decadent thing he could fathom. As the knot in his belly grows ever-tighter, his suckles become more greedy, frantic, not knowing whether youâll allow him this pleasure ever again.Â
âPlease, f-fuck,â he sighs, the words punched from his lips as he pulls away from you just enough to speak, uncaring as dribbles of milk leak from the corners of his lips, staining your skin. His hips practically move on their own accord as he mindlessly grinds up into you, seeking out the warmth and safety he knows he shall only ever feel within you.Â
Above him, you nod, swallowing thickly against the dryness at the back of your throat, cheeks flushed while you watch him unravel. Snaking a hand between your bodies once more, your fingers quickly find your sensitive, aching bud and rubbing at it with a practiced precision.Â
âGods, sweet little brother,â you breathe out, pleasure zapping down your spine. You frantically nod again, frantic this time, just as your high washes over you, âCome, Aemond⊠Gods, let go, little one.â
His suckles turn more into little biting nips while he gasps against you, trembling beneath you when he finally lets pleasure overtake him â eye squeezing shut at the feel of your walls clenching tightly around his cock.Â
The warmth of him filling you only spurs you on more, your breaths ragged against his forehead while you feel yourself tense and relax again and again, grabbing at whatever parts of him you can reach.Â
You each go still after a few moments, panting against each other. Aemond is practically limp beneath you, lazily nuzzling his face against your chest, satiated smile just barely tugging at the corners of his lips. Chuckling softly, you pepper his forehead in sweet kisses, relishing the contented hum he gives in return.Â
When you go to get up however, intent on fetching a cloth to clean you both up with, he reaches for you with a small whine as he grabs at your thighs.
âDonât, please,â he murmurs, brows furrowed when your eyes meet, âStayâŠâ
âYou⊠you want to stay like this?â You question, your heartbeat quickening as he quickly nods, âYou wish to stay ââ
âInside,â he finishes quickly, Adamâs apple bobbing when he swallows bashfully, cheeks flushed, âI⊠I feel safe like⊠like this.â
âThen you can stay, silly boy,â you answer with a grin, kissing at his forehead once more, âHere, letâs justâŠâ You murmur, tilting your hips to the side ever so slightly, attempting to pull him with you.
Blessedly, he seems to understand and follows you willingly, allowing you to maneuver the two of you onto your sides. After a moment, youâre comfortable once more, each of you lying on your side and facing the other, one of your legs slung over his narrow hips to keep him pressed tightly within you.Â
âGood boy,â you sigh softly, smiling when he shivers against you.Â
The two of you stay like that for a while, your hands gently caressing his soft skin or running through his hair while you hold him against you. After a while, his lilac eye finally flutters closed and you canât help but marvel at how much younger he looks like this â relaxed and spent while he lies against you, like the weight of the world has been lifted from his shoulders.Â
After a while, he seems to grow restless again, nosing at your chest until he finds what he desires. You sigh softly as he pulls a nipple into his mouth once more, suckling at it contentedly while he peers up at you sleepily.Â
âThere you go,â you murmur soothingly, coaxing him to lift his head just enough for you to lay an arm beneath it, allowing you to caress his shoulders while your other hand cups gently at the side of his face, thumb sweeping over his soft skin. âTake what you need, sweet one,â you coo, smiling as he quickly returns his lips to your breast, âYouâre safe, Iâve got youâŠâ
thank you for taking the time to read! hope you enjoyed! :)
consider adding yourself to my tag list or check out my works on ao3!
#aemond one eye#aemond targaryen#aemond targaryen x reader#aemond targaryen x you#aemond targaryen fanfiction#aemond targaryen fanfic#aemond targaryen fic#aemond targaryen smut#aemond x reader#aemond x you#aemond fanfiction#aemond fanfic#aemond fic#aemond smut#house of the dragon#house of the dragon fanfiction#house of the dragon fanfic#house of the dragon fic#house of the dragon smut#hotd#hotd fanfiction#hotd fanfic#hotd fic#hotd smut#fanfiction#fanfic#fic#smut#my writing
5K notes
·
View notes
Text
Happy house || Rafe Cameron x fem!reader
Summary: just a cute fic of the Cameron family being one big happy family and infatuated with you and Rafeâs daughter đ„°
Warnings: breastfeeding (?) apart from that this is all fluff
Word count: 1388
A/n: this was so cute to write đ„čđ„č loved writing the fact that the Cameron family is tight-knit and love one another
MASTERLIST (dad!rafe au masterlist)
divider be @yoonitos
âGot everything?â Rafe glanced back at you, his hands full with bags laden with mostly Mabelâs things. You hummed contentedly, one hand gently adjusting the bucket hat on Mabelâs head while her plushy little hands playfully reached for your face, her giggles filling the air.
âWeâre not late are we?â You called out as the two of you boarded the Cameronâs luxurious yacht. âHmm? Not really, they can wait,â Rafe grinned, glancing around as you shook your head, a soft smile playing on your lips. âTheyâre here! Theyâre here!â Wheezieâs voice echoed excitedly from above deck, followed by the unmistakable sound of footsteps rushing towards you.
You shared an amused glance with Rafe as he shook his head affectionately. âWheezie, slow down!â Sarahâs voice called out in a mixture of exasperation and amusement, just before Wheezie came bounding around the corner, closely followed by Sarah, Rose, and Ward.
âHey!â You greeted them warmly, arms open for hugs all around. Wheezie and Ward gravitated towards you and Mabel, their faces lighting up at the sight of the youngest Cameron family member.
Wheezie squealed, bouncing up and down in excitement as she gently pinched Mabelâs cheek. âHey, easy there,â Rafe interjected firmly, earning a glare from his younger sister, though you couldnât help but laugh.
âItâs okay, Rafe, sheâs being gentle,â you reassured him with an affectionate smile, his protective nature endearing as always. âWanna take her, dad?â you offered to Ward, who nodded eagerly. âMay I?â he asked softly, reaching out to cradle Mabel in his arms.
âOf course you can, sheâs your granddaughter,â you chuckled, leaning in closer as Mabel reached out to Ward, her little arms outstretched in anticipation. You moved closer to Rafeâs side, his arm instinctively wrapping around your waist, pulling you in close. He pressed a kiss to the top of your head, his voice low with admiration as he whispered, âThey all look so happy.â
Jesus, Sarah. Stop shoving your phone in her face,â Rafe groaned, his tone edged with mild annoyance as he watched Sarah snap yet another 0.5 photo of Mabel. You couldnât help but stifle a laugh at the sight, knowing that it was always Sarahâs candid photos of Mabel that Rafe eventually looked back on with a chuckle.
âSend them to me,â you mouthed to Sarah, who winked in response, both of you giggling like schoolgirls. âWhat are you giggling about, hmm?â Rafe asked, looking down at you with a smile, his irritation quickly fading. âNothing, nothing,â you said, your smile widening. âJust excited to get to the island and have lunch together as a family again.â
Rafeâs smile softened, appreciating how much you valued these family moments. Before he could say more, Rose chimed in, glancing at her watch. âOkay, I think we should move this upstairs, donât you think?â she suggested. Everyone agreed, and the group began making their way up to the spacious upper deck. The Bahamas sun was bright overhead, casting a warm glow over the yacht.
âYou know, if you ever need a babysitter, Iâm right here,â Wheezie offered, linking her arm through yours as you ascended the stairs. She batted her eyelashes playfully, making you giggle at her antics. Rafe, close behind, scoffed. âYeah, as if Iâm letting you look after my kid by yourself.â
Wheezie rolled her eyes dramatically. âAnd why not?â Rafe gave her an incredulous look. âRemember the time you almost burnt down the house because you wanted to heat up chicken nuggets in the microwave?â Wheezie huffs, âThatâs not fair!â She protests, her cheeks flushing. âI didnât know you werenât supposed to put metal in the microwave!â
Your jaw dropped in mock horror as you imagined the scene. âExactly,â Rafe said, patting Wheezieâs head with a teasing smile. âYouâre not looking after Mabel by yourself. End of story.â He walked away, leaving Wheezie pouting with her arms folded. You squeezed her arm reassuringly. âMaybe you can help out when Iâm around,â you suggested, trying to lift her spirits. Wheezie perked up a bit, her eyes brightening at the idea. âDeal!â she said, grinning.
~
âGuys! You have to tan with me, the UV rays are insane right now!â Sarah called out from one of the outdoor loungers, her phone in hand as she checked the weather app. âIâll be right there!â you shouted back, finishing up changing Mabelâs clothes. You handed her to Rose and Ward, who eagerly took over entertaining their granddaughter with coos and smiles.
Rafe trailed behind you, intrigued by the idea of getting some sun. He settled next to you on the lounger, stretching out and letting the warmth of the sun wash over him.âHow are your boobs not saggy?â Sarah suddenly blurted out as she watches you tie up your hair, her curiosity getting the better of her.
âSarah!â Rafe hissed, shooting her a disapproving look.âShit, sorry. Is that a bad thing to ask?â Sarahâs face flushed slightly, realizing the bluntness of her question. You couldnât help but laugh, finding the situation amusing. Sarah joined in, her laughter a bit more nervous.
âIâm just asking. All my friends said that your boobs begin to sag because your baby is always sucking on them,â she explained, pushing her sunglasses up the bridge of her nose. âWhich one of your friends has a fucking baby at your age?â Rafe interjected, his expression one of pure disbelief.
âNone of them. They were just saying that,â Sarah shrugged nonchalantly. You giggled, reaching over to rub sunscreen on Rafeâs face where heâd missed a spot. âI think itâs different for everyone. I mean, I hope mine donât sag,â you said, glancing down at your chest and giving them a light, playful touch.
âYou have such nice tits, itâs really unfair, â Sarah sighed dramatically, leaning back and closing her eyes against the sun. Rafe raised an eyebrow, clearly done with the conversation. âIâm putting my AirPods in,â he announced, inserting them with a huff as you and Sarah chuckled.
~
âMabel, come here,â Rafe clapped his hands with a gentle yet encouraging tone. Mabel babbled happily, steadying herself before taking a few small, determined steps towards you and Rafe; you were nestled against his chest as you cheered her on.
âKeep coming, sweetie,â you cooed softly, your hands ready to catch her. Eventually, Mabel reached you and crashed into your waiting arms with a squeal. You kissed her chubby cheek affectionately, âGood job, baby girl!â You lifted her up in the air, as she squealed with joy.
Rafe took the moment to take a photo, capturing the pure happiness on both your faces. As Rafe looked through the many photos already taken, you couldnât help but notice how Mabel lingered close to your chest.
âAre you hungry, bels?â You asked gently, brushing a stray lock of hair away from her face. Glancing at your phone, you noticed it was about time for Mabelâs next feeding.
With Rafe still focused on his phone, a small smile gracing his lips as he looked through the photos of you and Mabel, you adjusted your bikini top and began to nurse Mabel.
Noticing the quietness, Rafe briefly looks down, his eyes widening slightly. âJesus, kid,â he muttered under his breath, quickly reaching behind him to grab his shirt.
âWhat? Mabel was hungry,â you said innocently, as Mabel peers up to the both of you. Rafe didnât mind you breastfeeding in public, if his baby girl was hungry, she was hungry. But he always made sure to help you cover up with a blanket when you puly down your top, his protective instincts kicking in.
Rafeâs gaze darted around, making sure no one was watching. âYou shouldâve let me know beforehand so I couldâve helped you cover up,â he murmured, adjusting the shirt and to peek at Mabel.
You chuckled softly, appreciating his concern and love. Mabel watched the two of you with wide, curious eyes as she nursed contentedly. "Next time I will," you assured him, reaching over to pat his thigh affectionately.
yourusername
Liked by itssarahcameron, christoper_thorton, rosejcameron and 85,208 others
@/rafemfcameron weâve got the cutest baby đ„°
view more comments
rafemfcameron: damn right mamas
âïž eloise_cameron: I just puked đ€ą
âïž rafemfcameron: throwing u off the boat
itssarahcameron: SQUISHY
âïž rafemfcameron: are you calling my kid fat?
âïž yourusername: HAHAHAHAHA
christoper_thorton: guys let me babysit her again
âïž yourusername: you tried offering her one of your brownies topâŠ.
âïž rafemfcameron: im sorry, he did what?
#drew starkey#rafe cameron#fanfiction#outer banks#rafe cameron x reader#drew starkey x reader#drew starkey x y/n#rafe cameron smut#rafe cameron x you#obx fanfiction#rafe cameron x y/n#rafe cameron fanfiction#rafe cameron x female reader#rafe cameron x kook!reader#rafe cameron imagine#dad!rafe cameron#outerbanks rafe#outer banks x reader#outer banks x you#outer banks x y/n#rafe obx#obx imagine#obx x reader#ward cameron#sarah cameron#rose cameron#wheezie cameron#drew starkey x you#drew starkey x female reader#rafe cameron fluff
4K notes
·
View notes
Text
i got to help put together a wheely table today :))
#i love love love putting together furniture if u ever need something put together call me ill do it#i especially love doing it while wearijg a pretty dress...magical experience#OH AND I GOT TO USE A WRENCH FOR THE WHEELS#AND I DONT THINK IVE EVER WRENCHED BEFORE#BUT I WAS INFACT.....THE BIG WRENCHER.......#also the wheels spin allllll the way aroundm#it is very very cool#and we put the bottom shelf on upside down so its like a tray now#which will be vv useful i think#given the amount of kinda slidey art supplies/projects we have in the studio#they will feel sooooooo safe and secure with some edges around them#they will be all tucked in anbd we will give them all a leetle kiss onthe forehead
1 note
·
View note
Text
the story we wonât tell is my greatest fantasy âą LN4
PAIRINGS: lando norris x female!reader
SUMMARY: seven years. you and lando had been together for seven years, but it all went down the drain the moment he decided to come clean about the mistake that he did.
REMINDERS: this is purely fiction, the way how the character is portrayed in my story does not reflect the person that is portraying my character in real life. always separate fiction from reality, and do not repost or copy my work in any way.
WARNINGS: no use of y/n, breakup, cheating, cheater lando, pregnancy, secret child, mentions of nausea and vomiting, fainting, angst, open ending, math is not mathing (but i tried), some inaccuracies, named side characters (except for the reader), single!mom reader, and minor typographical errors
WORD COUNT: 7.2k
AUTHORâS NOTE: this fic is inspired by nikiâs song âapartment we wonât share,â ik that we have diff interpretations for the songs, but i interpret it as the way how i wrote this fic. iâm not planning on doing a second part of this, and just leave it an open ending. but if someday i get inspired, iâll try and make a part 2 for this, though for now, there will be no part 2 for this fic. i will be leaving the ending all up to you. you comments/reblogs is highly appreciated, and i hope that youâll enjoy this one.
It had been a long and exhausting week. The lingering ache from your family emergency still tugged at your heart, so to keep off your mind from things, you had spent most of the day sorting through Landoâs things, folding clothes and making sure his suitcase was ready for his flight to another race weekend. It was the kind of task you had done so many times in the last seven years, but this time, it felt heavier, like there was something wrong that you couldnât quite place.
When Lando returned to Monaco a few days later, you expected him to be his usual vibrant self, but something was off with him. Landoâs eyes seemed heavier, his posture slouched, and smile lacked the spark that you were used to.
âHey, can we talk for a second?â he asked, voice unusually subdued.
You set down the shirt you had been folding, brows furrowing. âSure, of course,â you replied, taking a seat on the couch. âWhatâs on your mind?â
Lando hesitated, hands fidgeting with the edge of his hoodie. He sat across from you, knees bouncing slightly as he stared at the floor. âYou know I love you, right? More than anything.â
A faint smile crossed your lips. âI know, Lan, and you made sure to let me know everyday for seven years.â
He looked up briefly, gaze fleeting before dropping back to the floor. âI need to tell you something, I wanted to be completely honest with youâŠand itâs probably the hardest thing Iâve ever had to say.â
Your heart skipped a beat. Landoâs tone, demeanorâit was all wrong, and you were getting really nervous by now. âWhat is it?â you asked, voice quiet, wary.
Lando took a deep breath, his hands now gripping his knees as if to ground himself. âWhen I was out for a night with the guys a month agoâŠI messed up.â
Your stomach churned. You didnât want to interrupt him, waiting for Lando to continue, though every fiber of your being wanted to scream at him, to demand some answers.
âThere wasâŠsomeone at the club that night,â he said, words slow and measured, like he was forcing them out of him. âIt was stupid, an honest mistake. I was so drunk, caught up in everything, and I wasnât thinking.â
You felt like the air had been sucked out of the room. âW-What are you saying?â you managed, voice barely above a whisper.
Lando finally looked at you, eyes glistening. âI accidentally slept with her. It was a one-time thing, I swear, then she called me last weekâI donât even know how she got my number, but she told me that sheâs pregnant.
Pregnant.
The words hit you like a freight train. You stared at him, mind completely blank, unable to process what he had just said. Tears began to blur your vision, but you didnât wipe them away.
âLandoâŠâ you tried to speak up, but your voice cracked.
âI didnât know how to tell you,â he said, voice shaking. âI didnât know what to do. All I could think about was how much Iâve hurt you. But I canât let my kid grow up without a family. I know how much family means to you, to me. I have to be there for them.â
Your heart shattered into pieces. You could see how much Lando was struggling, the guilt etched into every line of his face. But the pain of his betrayal was unbearable.
âI donâtâŠI donât have anything to say anymore, honestly,â you said finally, voice trembling. âBecause you had already made your decisionâyouâre choosing them.â
Lando shook his head vehemently. âNo! No, Iâm not choosing anyone over you. Youâre the love of my life. That hasnât changed and never will.â
âLando, you canât have both,â you said, tears streaming down your face. âI canât stay here knowing all of these. I canât be a part of this.â
He reached out as if to touch you, but you recoiled. You couldnât bear his touch right now. âPlease love,â he whispered, voice breaking. âI love you. I donât ever want to lose you.â
âYou already have,â you said softly, standing up and wiping your tears. âI wonât hold you back, Lando. You need to do whatâs right for your child. They deserve a family, and I will not be the reason why they donât have one.â
You walked to your shared bedroom, your movements mechanical as you began packing your things. Every item you placed in your suitcase felt like a dagger to your chest. This apartment had been your home, your safe haven, and now it was just a place you needed to escape from. Lando just stood in the doorway, watching you pack all of your things, his face pale and tear-streaked. He didnât try to stop youâhe knew that he couldnât.
When you zipped up your suitcase and grabbed your bag, you turned to him one last time. âTake care of both of them,â you said, voice barely audible. âBe the father they need.
With that, you walked out of the apartment, out of the life you and Lando had built together. You had loved him for seven years, trusted him with every piece of your heart. But now, all you had was the emptiness of what could have been.
The crisp night air bit at your skin as you stood by the entrance of the apartment building, clutching the handle of your suitcase. Your ride to the airport was just a few minutes away, but the wait felt eternal. You stared blankly at the sidewalk, mind is a chaotic mess, the weight of everything that had happened tonight pressing heavily on your chest.
You heard familiar voices approaching before you saw them, their cheerful tones instantly recognizable. Quickly, you wiped at your cheeks, hoping your red-rimmed eyes wouldnât give you away. Plastering on a smile, you turned towards Max and Kelly as they walked towards the entrance, hand in hand, their expressions bright despite the late hour.
âHey! What are you doing out here so late?â Kelly asked, brows knitting in concern as she noticed the two large suitcases beside you.
You hesitated, forcing your smile to stay in place. âI, uh, have a family emergency,â you lied smoothly, voice steady even though your heart was pounding. âI need to head back home for a bit.â
Max tilted his head slightly, sharp blue eyes scanning you with the protective gaze you had come to know so well over the years. âTwo large suitcases for just a quick trip? That seems a bit much,â he remarked lightly, though his tone carried a hint of suspicion.
You shrugged, trying to appear nonchalant. âItâs justâŠreally complicated right now. Iâm not sure how long Iâll be gone, so I packed extra, just in case.â
Kellyâs hand tightened on Maxâs arm as she stepped closer to you, her concern evident. âIs Lando not home right now? Why didnât you tell us earlier? We couldâve helped you pack, we can drive you to the airport.â
You shook your head quickly. âLanâs already sleeping and I hate to wake him up, he just recently got back from his trip. I also didnât want to bother you, Iâve already called a car, and it should be here any minute.â
They exchanged a look, clearly unconvinced but respectful enough not to press you further. âWell, weâre not leaving you out here alone,â Max said firmly. âWeâll wait with you until your ride gets here.â
You opened your mouth to protest, but the determined set of his jaw told you it would all be just pointless. Instead, you nodded, grateful for their presence even as it made it harder to hold yourself together.
Kelly gave you a warm smile, trying to ease the tension. âItâs late, but P was asking about you earlier,â she said softly. âSheâs been begging to have another day with her favorite Auntie.â
Your heart clenched at the mention of Penelope, and you forced your smile to widen. âIâll miss her so much,â you said, voice thick despite your best efforts. âTell her Iâll see her soon.â
Kellyâs brow furrowed slightly at your words, but before she could say anything, your ride had pulled up to the curb. Relief and dread washed over you in equal measure. Max then stepped forward immediately, grabbing your suitcases with ease.
âIâll load these up for you,â he said, tone gruff but kind.
âThank you,â you murmured, watching as he placed your suitcases in the trunk of the car.
When Max turned back, Kelly pulled you into a tight hug, her familiar perfume bringing a rush of bittersweet comfort. âTake care of yourself, okay?â she whispered. âWhateverâs going on, weâre here for you.â
You nodded against her shoulder, your throat too tight to respond. When she pulled away, Max had stepped forward, wrapping you in a hug that was strong and protective, just like he always was.
âBe back soon, okay? P will be missing her favorite Aunt.â he said, chuckling. âIf you need anything, you call me or Kelly. No excuses.â
âI will,â you promised, though you knew that you wouldnât.
As you stepped back, Kelly offered you a gentle smile. âWhen you get back, P will be so excited to see you again. You know how much she loves spending time with you.â
The lump in your throat grew, and you could only nod in response. You managed a faint smile as you climbed into the car, giving them one final wave.
âSafe travels,â Kelly called out as Max closed the door for you.
You watched them through the window, standing together on the curb, their figures illuminated by the soft glow of the streetlights. They waved as the car pulled away, but you couldnât bring yourself to wave back again. Instead, you turned your gaze forward, the city lights blurring through the tears that silently slid down your cheeks.
You didnât look back. You couldnât.
When you finally arrived back home, the weight of the long hour of flight clung to you like a heavy fog. You dragged your suitcases through the familiar front door, exhaustion etched into every inch of your body. The warm, welcoming scent of your childhood home did little to comfort you, instead, it only amplified the ache in your chest. All you wanted was to collapse into your bed and wake up to a world where none of this had ever happenedâa world where your heart wasnât shattered into pieces. But this was your reality, as cruel as it was.
You definitely hadnât anticipated seeing your older sister, Noelle, and her husband, Mike, in the living room, seated across from your mother, their laughter filling the space. The sound abruptly stopped when they noticed you standing in the doorway, your pale face and tired eyes a huge giveaway of the turmoil you tried so desperately to hide.
âWhat are you doing here?â Noelle asked, rising from her seatc brows knitting together in concern. âYou didnât tell us that you were coming home.â
Noelleâs brows knit together as she took in your disheveled appearance, her sharp eyes catching every detailâdark circles under your eyes, stiffness in your movements, and the forced smile you mustered.
âYeah,â you replied quietly, brushing a strand of hair from your face. âI, uh, needed to come home for a bit.â
Your mother rose from her seat as well, concern etched into her features. âSweetheart, whatâs wrong?â she asked softly, gaze darting between you and the suitcases you had left by the door.
You hesitated, throat tightening. You had been dreading this moment, knowing full well how much your family adored Lando so much. They had welcomed him with open arms from the start, treating him as one of their own. Now, you were about to break their hearts almost as much as he had broken yours.
âItâs nothing,â you said, forcing a smile that felt more like a grimace. âI just needed a change of scenery, thatâs all.â
Noelle stood, arms crossed as she gave you a pointed look. âDonât give me that kind of excuse. You donât just show up unannounced looking like this for no reason. What really happened?â
You swallowed hard, avoiding Noelleâs gaze. âLando and I broke up,â you said finally, your voice barely above a whisper.
The whole room fell silent, the weight of your words sinking in. Your motherâs hand flew to her mouth, eyes wide with shock. âOh, my darling sweetheart,â she breathed.
Noelle, however, was not so subdued. âWhat?â she exclaimed, voice rising. âWhat do you mean you broke up? What happened? Did he do something stupid?â
âNo!â you said quickly, shaking your head. âNo, it wasnât like that.â
âThen what was it like?â she pressed, tone sharp.
You took a deep breath, willing yourself to stay composed. âWe justâŠfell out of love. The both of us,â you said, hating the words even as you said then. âWeâve been together for so long, and I guess we just realized that we werenât the same people years ago anymore. It didnât make sense to keep on pretending, weâll just end up hurting ourselves in the long run.â
Noelleâs eyes narrowed, clearly unconvinced. âThat doesnât sound like Lando at all. The man adores you so much, even worships the ground you walk on.â
âHe did,â you said softly, chest tightening. âAnd I adored him too. But people change, feelings change.â
Your mother stepped closer, her hands reaching for yours. âAre you sure this is what you wanted?â she asked gently.
You nodded, the lump in your throat growing. âItâs for the best,â you lied, voice cracking slightly.
Mike, who had been silent until now, placed a hand on Noelleâs shoulder. âIf this is what sheâs decided, we should respect it,â he said quietly, giving you a small, understanding nod.
Noelle just sighed, clearly torn between pressing you for further information and letting it go. Finally, she relented, though her expression was still skeptical.
âI just donât want you to regret this,â she said, voice more softer now. âYou two were so good together.â
You bit the inside of your cheek to keep you from breaking down. âIâll be okay, eventually,â you said, words hollow.
Your mother pulled you into a tight embrace, her warmth briefly soothing the ache in your chest. âWhatever happens, weâre always here for you,â she murmured.
âThanks, mommy,â you whispered, blinking back tears.
As you pulled away, your sister gave you a long look, her expression unreadable. âIf he hurt youââ she started, but you cut her off.
âHe didnât,â you said firmly, voice steady despite the storm inside you. âIt just didnât work out. Thatâs all.â
Noelle still didnât look convinced, but she nodded, clearly sensing that thereâs more to it, and you didnât want to talk about it anymore. âAlright,â she said quietly. âBut if you ever want to talk, Iâm here, okay? Weâre all here.â
You gave her a small smile, though it didnât reach your eyes like it used to. âThank you,â you said, words barely audible.
Excusing yourself, you retreated to your old bedroom, closing the door behind you gently and sinking onto the comfort of your bed. The familiar surroundings brought no comfort, only a stark reminder of the life you had left behind. While you lay down, staring at the ceiling, the tears finally came, silent and unrelenting.
You had still protected Lando from your familyâs anger, even though he did not deserve any of it, and now, you were left to pick up the pieces alone.
The Nausea hits you like clockwork every morning. You found yourself rushing to the bathroom, stomach twisting in protest against seemingly nothing. It had started a few weeks ago, and though you had initially dismissed it as a lingering flu or perhaps the stress with work finally catching up to you, it was becoming harder to ignore. Rest didnât seem to help you, but you assured yourself that it wasnât that serious. Besides, you have work to focus on, and that was enough to keep your mind occupied, most of the time.
Two months had already passed since you had left Monaco for good, and life had begun to settle into a new rhythm. Yes, the ache in your chest was still there, but it had been dulled into something manageable. You were slowly rebuilding yourself, piece by piece, though the nausea was an unwelcome distraction.
It was a normal afternoon, while you were curled up on the beanbag chair in your bedroom after a long and tiring day, your phone buzzed. The caller ID that was displayed on the screen made your breath catch for a momentâKelly. You hesitated before answering, already bracing yourself for the conversation. Her face appeared on the screen, bright and concerned.
âFinally, I caught you!â she said with a smile, though her tone was tinged with worry. âI was starting to think you were avoiding me.â
You shook your head, chuckling and offered her a small smile. âIâm so sorry, Kelly. Things have been so busy with me lately.â
Kellyâs brow furrowed slightly as she studied your face. âYou look tired. Are you okay?â
âIâm fine, itâs just a silly flu,â you said quickly, but the faint edge in your voice didnât go unnoticed.
âDonât lie to me,â she said gently. âMax and I found out about it already, about you and Lando.â
Your chest tightened, but you forced yourself to stay calm. âOh.â
âWhy didnât you tell me sooner?â she asked, expression softening. âWe wouldâve been there for you. Youâve been through this all alone.â
You sighed, your shoulders sagging. âI didnât want to drag anyone else into the mess, and I didnât even know what to say.â
Kellyâs voice grew firmer. âYou didnât have to say anything, we wouldâve understood. Max is furious with Lando, you know. So is Carlos. I even have to break the two of them away from Lando.â
Your heart sank at the thought. âPlease donât be mad at him. Itâs not worth it.â
Kelly shook her head, lips pressing into a thin line. âIt is worth it. What Lando did to you was unforgivable. You didnât deserve any of that.â
âItâs okay,â you murmured, though the words felt hollow. âIâll move on, eventually.â
Kellyâs expression softened again, and she leaned closer to the camera. âI just wish youâd let us help you. You know we love you, right? Youâve always been family to us.â
âI know,â you whispered, tears pricking at your eyes.
Her face brightened slightly. âBut speaking of family, someoneâs been dying to talk to you!â
Before you could respond, the screen shifted, and Penelopeâs little face appeared, her eyes lighting up when she saw you. âAUNTIE!â she exclaimed, voice high with excitement.
âHi, P!â You said, heart aching at the sight of her.
âI miss you so much!â she said, pouting slightly. âWhen are you coming back? Mommy says youâre not in Monaco anymore.â
You hesitated, unsure of how to explain. âI miss you too, darling. I justâŠI had to be somewhere else for a while.â
âBut youâll come back, right?â she asked, her big eyes staring at you expectantly.
You swallowed hard, forcing a smile. âWeâll see, P. For now, you have to be good for your mommy and Maxie, okay?â
âIâm always good!â she declared, puffing out her chest.
Kellyâs voice chimed in from the background. âThatâs debatable,â she teased, earning a giggle from Penelope.
You couldnât help but smile, even as your chest tightened. âYouâre the best, P. Donât ever forget that.â
âOkay!â she said brightly before turning to Kelly. âMommy, can we call Auntie again tomorrow?â
Kelly returned to the screen, giving you a knowing look. âWeâll let her rest for now, P. But yes, weâll call Auntie again soon.â
âPromise?â Penelope asked, her eyes wide.
âPromise,â Kelly said, smiling before turning back to you. âTake care of yourself, okay? And if you need anything, anything, just call me.â
You nodded. âThank you so much, Kelly. I will.â
After ending your facetime call with Kelly, you stumbled into the bathroom, your stomach churning violently. The moment you stepped inside, you collapsed in front of the toilet, heaving uncontrollably. It felt as though your insides were twisting, every muscle tensing in protest. When it finally subsided, you shakily wiped your mouth, staring at your reflection in the mirror. You looked paleâpaler than usual, and eyes were bloodshot from the strain.
It took you a couple of minutes to compose yourself before heading to the kitchen, hoping the water would help settle your spinning head. Grabbing a glass from the cabinet, you poured the water, but as you lifted it to your lips, another wave of dizziness hit you. This time, it was stronger. Your grip faltered, and the glass slipped from your hand, shattering loudly as it hit the floor.
The sharp noise brought Noelle and Mike running into the kitchen. They froze when they saw you swaying on your feet, barely managing to stay upright. You blinked, trying to focus, but everything around you was growing hazier. Before you could say anything, your legs gave way beneath you, and you crumpled to the floor, your vision blackening as you began to lose consciousness. Noelle was by your side in an instant, her hands gentle but urgent as she checked your pulse.
âDonât worry, sheâs alive,â Noelle muttered, voice steady despite the fear in her eyes. âMike, call an ambulance now!â
Mike didnât hesitate, rushing to grab his phone and calling for help. You could hear Mikeâs voice in the background, muffled and frantic as he spoke to the operator.
âYes, we need an ambulance,â Mike said, tone clipped, almost too calm for the situation. âMy sister-in-law collapsed, and we need help immediately.â
Noelleâs voice cut through your haze, trying to keep you steady. âCome on, stay with me, okay? Just hold on.â
You couldnât respond, couldnât even make a sound, but you could hear them both, voices blending with the rush of adrenaline in the air. Mikeâs footsteps moved swiftly, his voice growing more distant as he spoke with the ambulance on the phone.
The minutes that followed felt like hours. The sound of the ambulance siren grew louder, and relief flooded Noelleâs face as the paramedics rushed into the house. They quickly assessed the situation, asking Noelle questions about your symptoms and recent health conditions.
âSheâs been experiencing dizziness for weeks now,â Noelle explained. âSheâs stubborn, didnât want to see a doctor. This morning she was nauseous, and now sheâs fainted.â
The paramedics nodded, lifting you onto the stretcher carefully. Noelle and Mike followed closely as they carried you out to the ambulance. âIâm coming with her to the hospital,â Noelle said firmly, climbing into the back of the ambulance without hesitation.
Mike stayed behind, watching the ambulance doors close with a worried expression. âAlright, Iâll be informing your mother when she arrives, but call me as soon as you know something,â he said to Noelle before they drove off.
Inside the ambulance, Noelle held your hand tightly, her fingers trembling against your own. âYouâre going to be fine,â she said, though her voice was thick with concern. âJust breathe, okay? Weâre almost there.â
You couldnât focus on what Noelle was saying. The world had gone dark around you, only the pulse of your own heartbeat reminding you that you were still there, still fighting to stay conscious.
The steady beeping of the machines was the first thing you registered as you slowly opened your eyes, the sterile smell of the hospital room making everything feel surreal. Blinking against the harsh fluorescent light, your gaze landed on your sister, Noelle, sitting in one of the chairs beside your bed, her expression a mixture of worry and relief when she noticed you stirring.
âNoelle,â you croaked, voice hoarse from sleep and dryness.
She shot up almost instantly, coming to your side and helping you adjust into a sitting position in the hospital bed. Her hands were gentle but firm as she propped a pillow behind your back.
âHey, take it easy, okay?â she said softly. She reached for a bottle of water on the bedside table, unscrewing the cap before handing it to you. âHere, drink up. Small sips.â
You followed her instructions, taking slow, careful sips, the cool water soothing your parched throat. âWhat happened? Why am I in the hospital?â you asked weakly, mind still foggy.
âYou fainted in the kitchen,â Noelle explained, brushing a stray strand of hair from your face. âYou scared the hell out of us. Mike called the ambulance, and I came with you here. Mom and Mike are both on their way. Theyâll be here soon.â
Before you could respond, there was a knock at the door, a doctor entered, her expression professional but kind. Noelle immediately stepped aside, letting her approach you.
âIâm glad that youâre awake now, my dear,â she began, smiling at you. âWeâve run some tests to determine the cause of your fainting and other symptoms.â
You nodded slowly, stomach churning with apprehension. Noelle moved closer to your side, her presence grounding you.
âWeâve reviewed your results,â she continued, glancing at her clipboard before meeting your eyes. âThe dizziness, nausea, and vomiting youâve been experiencing for the past weeks are all consistent with early pregnancy symptoms. Congratulations, youâre seven weeks pregnant!â
Pregnant. Pregnant.
For a moment, the words did not register. The hospital room seemed to grow impossibly still, the doctorâs voice fading into the background as you processed the news. Seven weeks. The timeline clicked into place, and your heart sank as realization hit. Seven weeks pregnant. You could hear the faint ringing in your ears, a sharp contrast to the quiet gasp from Noelle beside you.
âIâŠIâm sorry, what?â you managed to stammer, voice shaking.
âYouâre pregnant, dear,â the doctor repeated gently. âSeven weeks along. Your vitals look good, but itâs important to start prenatal care as soon as possible. Weâve referred you to an OB-GYN who will guide you through the process and answer any questions you might have.â
You nodded numbly, unable to form any coherent response. The doctor continued to explain what you should expect in the coming weeksâdietary recommendations, plenty of rest, and the importance of regular check-ups. But her words felt very distant, as if you were hearing them through a fog.
When the doctor finally left, you were left staring blankly at the sterile white wall, the weight of the revelation crushing you. Seven weeks. You did the math in your head, mind racing. By now, you know that the woman Lando had gotten pregnant would be around three months into pregnancy.
Tears began to well up in your eyes, the enormity of the situation was starting to overwhelm you. You were carrying Landoâs child. That man had broken and shattered your heart into pieces, and who had chosen someone else, was now bound to you in a way that you could not escape.
âNoelle,â you whispered, voice breaking.
She knelt beside the bed, taking your trembling hands in hers. âIâm here. Donât worry, Iâm here, okay?â she said softly, her tone steady and reassuring.
âI donât know what to do,â you cried, tears streaming down your face. âThis wasnât supposed to happen. How am I supposed to handle this?â
Noelleâs grip on your hands tightened slightly, eyes full of concern. âI donât have all the answers,â she admitted, âbut you donât have to go through this alone. Whatever you decide to do, Iâll be here for youâMom and Mike, too. Weâll all figure this out together, okay?â
Two years had already passed, and your life was a world away from where it had been. Astrid, your little ray of sunshine, was turning two today. She was the center of your universe, your whole life, her giggles filling every corner of the house you had worked so hard to call your own. It was a beautiful home, just three doors away from your motherâs home, ensuring that Astrid was always surrounded by the love and warmth of your family.
Noelle and Mike, ever the doting aunt and uncle, spoiled her endlessly. They brought over toys, books, and clothesâsometimes more than you thought Astrid needed, but you couldnât deny the happiness on Astridâs face when they arrived with surprise in hand.
Itâs true that your pregnancy and the early days of motherhood had not been easy, but you were able to survive. More than that, you thrived. With a promotion to a top position at work and a comfortable life for you and Astrid, you finally felt at peace. The pastâLando, was no longer a wound, but now a distant memory you had learned to accept. Your family also had long stopped asking questions about the details of your breakup, and while they knew Lando was Astridâs father, they never dwelled on it. Astrid had all the love she needed, and that was what mattered most.
But there was one part of your life you had not reconciled yetâMax and Kelly. Despite keeping in touch with Kelly through regular facetime calls, you had managed to keep Astrid a secret. It wasnât that you didnât trust them, it was just too complicated to explain everything. It was already enough that they found out what Lando had done that caused your breakup.
However, when Kelly had mentioned that they would be spending their vacation in your home country and would be arriving the day before Astridâs second birthday, you had a window of opportunity. It was time to take a step forward. So you had invited them to what you described as a simple gathering at your home. You didnât explicitly tell them that it would be Astridâs birthday partyâjust that it would be a chance to catch up and spend time together.
As the day drew closer, you found yourself torn between excitement and anxiety. What would they say when they realized the gathering that you had talked about was actually a celebration for your daughter? Would they feel hurt that you had kept Astrid a secret for so long?
These thoughts lingered as you finalized the decorations, baked Astridâs favorite cake, and prepared the house for your guests. But when you looked at Astrid, happily playing with her toys in the living room, the doubt began to fade. This was your life nowâa life filled with love and laughter, even if it was different from what you had once imagined.
The backyard was a colorful dream, adorned with streamers, balloons, and a banner that read, Happy 2nd Birthday! and Astridâs favorite colors painted every corner of the space, and the laughter of children filled the air as they played games and ran around laughing. Astrid herself was the picture of happiness, twirling in her pretty dress, a bright smile on her face as she clung to her grandmotherâs hand.
You excused yourself from the backyard, your hands brushing against your dress nervously as you stepped back into the kitchen to double-check the desserts. Rows of cupcakes sat neatly on the counter, each one topped with swirls of frosting and sprinkles. You picked one up, turning it slightly to make sure everything was perfect. Then the doorbell rang.
Your heart skipped a beat, a wave of nerves rushing through you. It had to be Max, Kelly, and Penelope. You wiped your hands on a towel, took a deep breath, and walked to the front door, steadying yourself before opening it. The moment you opened the door, cheerful shouts of âsurprise!â had greeted you. Kelly was the first to throw her arms around you, pulling you into a warm hug.
âItâs so good to see you!â she exclaimed, stepping back as Max swooped in for a hug.
âYouâve been hiding!â Max teased lightly, squeezing your shoulder before stepping aside to let Penelope in.
âHi Auntie!â Penelope chirped, small arms wrapping tightly around your waist as she hugged you with all her might.
You bent down to her level, pulling her into a proper hug. âHi, darling. I missed you so much!â
Penelope pulled back, her face beaming. âI missed you too, Auntie! Can I see your house?â
Before you could respond, the sound of childrenâs laughter drifted in from the backyard, catching their attention. Kelly tilted her head curiously.
âWhatâs going on back there?â she asked, brows furrowed. âThat sounds like a lot of kids.â
Max glanced at you, an eyebrow raised. âIs this the simple gathering you mentioned?â
A nervous smile tugged at your lips as you stepped back, gesturing for them to follow. âCome on, follow me.â
You led them through the hallway and out through the glass doors that lead to the backyard, where the yard was buzzing with activity. Children were playing games, some of them are having the time of their life on the bouncy castle, parents chatted near the tables of food, and Astrid was in the middle of it all, her laughter carrying above the noise.
Penelope gasped in delight. âCan I please go play?â she asked, bouncing on her toes as she looked up at Max and Kelly.
Kelly nodded with a smile. âOf course, go ahead.â
Penelope dashed off, her excitement blending seamlessly with the other children. Kelly and Max, however, stood frozen, their eyes scanning the scene. It wasnât long before they realized that this was not just any gathering.
âIs thisâŠâ Kelly began, voice trailing off.
âA birthday party?â Max finished for her, tone laced with confusion.
You nodded slowly, your smile nervous. âYes. Actually,â you glanced at Astrid, who was now in your motherâs arms, laughing as your mother tickled her sides. âItâs her birthday party.â
Their confusion deepened as they followed your gaze. Max opened his mouth to speak, but Kelly beat him to it. âHer?â she asked, voice soft, almost uncertain.
Taking a deep breath, you walked over to your mother and gently took Astrid from her arms. Astrid immediately snuggled into your shoulder, her tiny hands clutching at your dress as she peeked at the newcomers. Turning back to Max and Kelly, you smiled, though your heart was racing.
âGuys, this is Astrid,â you said softly. âMy daughter.â
For a moment, there was only silence as Max and Kelly processed your words. Kellyâs hand flew to her mouth, eyes wide, while Max stared at you, his expression a mix of shock and something deeper.
âYou have a daughter?â Kelly finally asked, voice trembling slightly.
You nodded, holding Astrid a little tighter. âI do.â
Maxâs voice was careful, almost cautious. âWhereâs her father?â
The question hung heavy in the air, heavy and unspoken truths lingering just beneath the surface. You looked down at Astrid, avoiding Maxâs gaze as you shifted your weight uncomfortably.
âHeâsâŠnot in the picture anymore,â you said quietly.
Maxâs eyes narrowed slightly, jaw tightening. It was clear he had pieced everything together, but decided not to press further. Instead, his gaze softened as he looked at Astrid, who was now peering curiously at him. Kelly stepped forward, her initial shock melting into warmth.
âCan I hold her?â she asked gently.
You nodded, carefully handing Astrid over. Kelly cradled her as if she had been waiting for this moment forever, her face lighting up as Astrid stared at her with wide, curious eyes.
âSheâs so beautiful,â Kelly murmured, voice thick with emotion.
Max crouched down slightly to Astridâs level, his serious expression softening. âHey there, little one,â he said, playfully covering his eyes with his hands and then revealing them. âPeekaboo!â
Astrid blinked at him, tiny lips began curling into a smile as Max covered his face with his hand again and revealed it with a loud âboo!â Astridâs laughter was immediate and infectious, filling the air and making Max grin wider.
âShe likes you,â Kelly said with a laugh, glancing at Max as she bounced Astrid gently.
Max looked up, his expression a mix of amusement and something more tender. âWhat can I say? Kids love me.â
Penelope had run up to you with little Astrid in tow, face glowing with excitement. âAuntie, can Astrid play with me? I promise that Iâll take care of her,â she said, her little hands clasped together as she gave you the most earnest look.
You smiled, crouching down to their level. âAlright,â you said gently, brushing a strand of hair out of Astridâs face. âBut remember, sheâs still very small, so be careful with her, okay?â
âI promise!â Penelope chirped. âCome on Astrid, letâs play!â she took Astridâs hand and led her back towards the group of children.
Once they were settled, you turned to Max and Kelly, who were waiting nearby, their expressions a mix of curiosity and seriousness. You gestured towards the patio table, and the three of you moved to sit down. For a brief moment, there was an awkward silence, only broken by the distant sound of children laughing.
It was Max who spoke first. âSo,â he began, leaning forward with his elbows on his knees, âare you going to tell Lando about Astrid?â
âNo.â you said firmly, meeting his gaze.
Kellyâs brows furrowed. âNo?â she repeated, voice a mix of confusion and concern. âYou donât plan on telling him that he has a daughter?â
âTelling him that he has a daughter is not included in my plans,â you said quietly, glancing briefly at Astrid, who was now sitting on the grass with Penelope, giggling as they played.
Max exhaled sharply, leaning back in his chair. âBut why?â he asked, voice steady but tinged with disbelief. âDonât you think he has the right to know?â
You looked at Max, expression calm but resolute. âHe had already made his choice and I made mine,â you said softly. âBy the time I found out that I was pregnant, he was already committed to building a life with someone elseâfor their child. Iâm not that ignorant, Iâve seen the articles, Max. Itâs clear as daylight that heâs happy with them, heâs being the father that the child needs.â
Max sighed. âThis isnât about the articles or public perception. Itâs about Astrid. She has the right to know who her father is, and Lando has a right to know about her.â
Kelly nodded in agreement with what had Max just said. âAnd what happens when she grows up and starts asking questions?â
âIâll tell Astrid,â you said. âIâll tell her when the time is right, Iâll explain everything to her. But for now, Iâm protecting her. I donât want her to feel like she was a second thought or an obligation. I donât want to make her feel unwanted.â
Max shook his head slightly. âItâs not fair to Astrid, or to Lando,â he said, voice low. âHe deserves to know. He deserves the chance to be a part of her life.â
âAnd what if Lando doesnât want to be a part of her life, Max?â you said, voice cracking slightly and gripping the edge of the table. âWhat if yes, I ended up telling him, and he rejected her? What if I ruin the good thing he has now, for nothing? Iâm not going to be the person who will bring chaos to my daughterâs life by trying to force something that might not even work, and I most definitely won't be the one who will tear Landoâs life apart just to ease my conscience.â
Kelly reached out, placing a hand gently on yours. âI understand that youâre scared,â she said softly. âAnd I understand why youâve made your choice. But you donât have to do this alone. Whatever you decide, weâll support you. But please, just think about it, okay?â
You nodded, though you knew that your decision was firm and wouldnât change. âThank you,â you said quietly, looking between Max and Kelly. âI just need you both to trust me on this one. Trust that Iâm doing whatâs best for Astrid.â
Max hesitated, then finally nodded. âWeâll be keeping this just between the three of us,â he said, though there was a note of reluctance in his voice. âBut if you ever change your mind, you know where to find us.â
Kelly smiled faintly, her grip on your hand tightening briefly before she let go. âAstrid is lucky to have you as her mother,â she said, voice warm. âSheâs amazing and gorgeous, you know. Sheâs already so full of life.â
You smiled softly at Kellyâs words. âShe is,â you said. âShe really is.â
Glancing back towards the yard, you watched Astrid and Penelope play together, the sound of Astridâs uncontrollable laughter filled the air, warming your heart in a way that words could never even describe. Her happiness was infectious, an important reminder of everything good in your life despite the path it had taken to get where you are now. But as your eyes lingered on her, there was a familiar ache that settled deep in your chest.
You couldnât deny itâAstridâs features were very unmistakable. Her eyes, so full of wonder and innocence, were a mirror image of Landoâs. Every now and then, when she turned her head a certain way or smiled just so, it was like seeing a glimpse of Lando again. The resemblance was undeniable, and it only grew stronger as Astrid got older. It was a bittersweet reality you carried with you every day.
Yet, despite the pain that came with those reminders, you were happy. Truly, deeply happy. Astrid was surrounded by loveâa love so abundant that it filled every corner of her little world. She didnât need anything else, not when you, your whole family, and everyone who cherished her. That love was enough, it had to be enough.
Letting Lando go was not easy. It had taken every ounce of strength you had to accept that the life you once imagined with him was not meant to be. But you had done it, you had learned to let him go. You had made peace with the fact that you were not the one he chose, and the woman you would never be was the one who was not his.
Someday, you knew, the time might come when you were ready to tell Lando about Astrid, ready to introduce him to the child you both brought into this world. But that day was not today. For now, you would let him continue living the life he had chosen, with the person he had chosen. You wished him nothing but happiness, even if it wasnât with you.
You also hoped that Lando would one day find everything he was searching for, that he would feel fulfilled and content in the life he was building. Even if it hurts, you wanted that for him, and while he was busy living that life, the daughter you both would not raise together would still be hereâwaiting for him, even if he didnât know it yet.
The breakup, heartache, and the choices you made were not what you had wanted, but they were what you needed. Sometimes, itâs hard to accept the fact that love is not enough to keep two people together, and thatâs okay. It didnât make the love you once shared with Lando any less real.
But for now, everything else could wait.
#f1#formula 1#formula one#f1 fanfic#f1 fic#f1 imagine#f1 x reader#formula 1 fanfic#formula 1 imagine#formula 1 x reader#lando norris#lando norris 4#ln4#lando norris fic#lando norris one shot#lando norris fanfic#lando norris imagine#lando norris oneshot#lando norris angst#lando norris x female reader#lando norris x reader#lando norris x female!reader#ln4 one shot#ln4 imagine#ln4 fic#ln4 angst
2K notes
·
View notes
Text
Hearbreak Anniversary with Rafayel
Summary: It was your anniversary with Rafayel. One year of togetherness. But what if he does not show up when you expect him to? What if he was spending it with MC? Pairing: Non MC! Reader x Rafayel Note: MC in this fic goes by the name Lina (my name... so if you are angry, you can be angry at me :3). This oneshot was based on this request. I will write this for the other LADS men too. Content Warning: Fear of abandonment, self worth issues, angst, hurt and slight comfort, Rafayel grovelling, Rafayel POV
The soft glow of the sunset filtered through the gauzy curtains of Rafayelâs studio, painting the space in warm hues of gold and orange. The place smelled faintly of himâa mix of turpentine, salt, and the faint trace of his cologne. You had spent hours here today, your hands busy arranging the decorations youâd so carefully prepared for this special occasion. Sea shells, shimmering like iridescent pearls, lined the edges of the room, their opalescent beauty a nod to the ocean he once called home. Candles flickered softly on every surface, their flames dancing to an unseen rhythm. Youâd even managed to find strands of silken seaweed and glass ornaments, hoping to evoke the beauty of his heritage, the beauty of him.
Every corner of his art studio had been dusted, tidied, and then transformed with touches of magic, warmth, and care. You even placed the tiny trinkets and mementos you had kept from your shared momentsâlittle souvenirs from your adventures together, knickknacks that held meaning between the two of you. You wanted him to feel at home, to feel the same sense of belonging that you had with him. You even wore your best clothes, the ones he had once complimented.
Today was your first anniversary. The thought alone sent your heart fluttering, and youâd poured all that love into this space, into this moment.
A few months ago he had told you this was just another day for him. A godâs sense of time was different, fleeting, perhaps even insignificant. But to you, it meant everything. It was a celebration of love that had somehow defied the oddsâof a mortal heart tangled with one belonging to something far greater. So you ignored the whispering doubts that crept into the back of your mind, choosing instead to focus on trust. Rafayel had chosen you, not her. No matter how many stories tied them together, no matter the whispered inevitability of their connection, he had assured you. It was you he loved now.
But as the hours passed, that fragile trust began to tremble.
You sat in the chair by the window, smoothing down the dress youâd picked especially for today. Time crawled. The soft golden light of day gave way to a dark, yawning sky, and still, Rafayel didnât come home. The anniversary dinner, meticulously prepared and carefully plated, sat untouched on the table. Each tick of the clock became a cruel reminder of his absence.
Worry gnawed at you. What if something had happened to him? Perhaps the art sale ran late, or he was caught up with his patrons. But he always came back home, right?
Your heart twisted as you reached for your phone, dialing a number you didnât want to use but needed to.
âThomas?â you asked hesitantly, your voice trembling.
âOh, hey,â Rafayelâs manager greeted casually. âEverything okay?â
âIs Rafayel still at the sale?â You tried to keep the panic from seeping into your tone, but the silence on the other end was damning.
âUh⊠no, he left hours ago. Said he was going to grab dinner. Lina was with him.â
Your grip tightened on the phone, your knuckles turning white.
Lina.
The name struck like a knife.
âThanks, Thomas,â you whispered, hanging up before he could ask anything more.
You sat there, staring at the flickering candles, their light casting long shadows across the studio walls. He was with Lina. On your anniversary. You had trusted him, convinced yourself that you were enough despite the insecurities that had clawed at your heart since the day you met him.
But now, they came roaring to life.
You had known, of course, who Lina was. She was the one linked to the sea god, his past, his historyâhis heart. You tried not to let it affect you, tried to bury the insecurities that rose whenever she came up in conversation. Rafayel always assured you there was nothing between them. But then why was he with her, of all people, on your anniversary?
Tears blurred your vision as your chest tightened painfully. Lina.
She was everything you were not. Strong, beautiful, a part of Rafayelâs past, his first love. How could you compete with that? How could you compete with someone who had shared so much more with him, someone whose bond with him was carved in the very fabric of his existence? She was a part of him, woven into the his story, while you were⊠just someone who had stumbled into his life, someone insignificant in comparison.
Lina... The woman who was forever tied to his past. The sea god's bride. The one heâd loved for so long, the one who had always been there, time after time. You had told yourself, time and time again, that it was nothing. That Rafayel was different with you. He had assured you that there was nothing between them anymore.
But if itâs nothing, why is he with her now? On our day.
Your fingers trembled as you held the phone to your ear, but you couldnât even bring yourself to ask any more questions. The answers were irrelevant now. His absence, her presence, they were all you needed to know.
Tears pooled at the edges of your vision before spilling over, streaking your face like tiny rivers tracing paths through dusted cheeks. It wasnât fair. Nothing felt fair. He had promised you. He had promised. But promises were like ocean tides, werenât they? Sweeping away whatever they could, leaving only bits of broken shells behind.
Lina was everything you could never be. She was strong, beautiful, powerfulâeverything that Rafayel deserved. She had the sea godâs heart, had always had it, and here you were, just a fleeting ripple on the surface, barely a mark to him. She was woven into the fabric of his past, his future. What are you to him? What have you ever been?
The memories of your relationship, the quiet moments of closeness, the laughter shared under the soft, flickering light of his candles, all those moments seemed so... fragile now. Fragile and fleeting. You were nobody. Just a distraction, a place holder. Nothing more.
You stood up abruptly, the chair scraping against the floor like the scratch of claws on stone. The studio, his studio, filled with remnants of him, was suffocating. His scent lingered in the air, the faint trace of his cologne mixing with the oils and paints scattered everywhere. His taste still clung to your lips from the last time youâd kissed him, the memories of his touch branded into your skin. It was all too much. Too much. The studio, so full of him, was now a suffocating reminder of what you had lost. You didnât want to stay. You couldnât.
You tried to hold the tears back, but it was useless. Every doubt, every fear youâd bottled up over the months came crashing down, drowning you in their suffocating weight.
This wasnât love. This was a cruel game, one you couldnât win.
You couldnât breathe. You had to get out.
Your legs moved before your mind could catch up, carrying you toward the door. The wind hit your face the moment you stepped outside, cool and biting, but it wasnât enough to quell the storm raging inside you.
You ran.
The streets blurred into one indistinct smear of light and shadow as you ran aimlessly, your feet pounding against the pavement, carrying you farther and farther from that studio. From him.
Eventually, the pavement gave way to sand, and the sharp tang of the ocean filled the air. The moon hung high above, casting a silver glow over the beach. Your chest heaved, your lungs burning as you collapsed onto the sand, letting the waves crash against the shore in a soothing rhythm that mocked your turmoil. You kept running, further and further away from whitesand bay, along the beach.
You stumbled, falling to your knees in the sand, clutching your arms around yourself. Your chest heaved as the tears fell freely, the sound of the ocean mixing with your sobs. Lina. You could picture them together, her hand in his, the same way they had been for so many years before you. The seagulls cried above you, indifferent to your pain. And in that moment, you realized that the world didnât stop for you. It never had. You stared out at the endless sea, the dark horizon stretching in front of you.
How could I have been so blind?
The waves crashed against the shore, each one louder than the last. You are nothing to him. The thought echoed in your mind over and over, relentless, until you could barely breathe under the weight of it.
And just when you thought the world couldnât get any colder, the tears started again. They fell freely now, salt mixing with the salt of the sea.
You had wanted to be enough. But maybe that was a joke after all. But even as your body trembled with the weight of the heartbreak, you knew one thing: You could never go back. Not to him, not to that studio, not to any of it. You were just a wave, crashing onto the shore, and he was the sea god.
The night wrapped itself around you like a suffocating blanket. The cold air bit into your skin, but it wasnât enough to numb the ache clawing at your chest. Each crashing wave seemed to echo the bitter truth you couldnât escape: you were never going to be enough for him. You curled tighter into yourself, trembling as the tears continued to flow. The sand clung to your dress, to your damp hands, but you couldnât bring yourself to care. The world had narrowed to the storm raging inside youâa tempest of betrayal, doubt, and misery.
The sharp chill of the ocean breeze whipped your hair against your tear-streaked face, but it was nothing compared to the icy grip of despair coiling around your heart. Every promise heâd made, every word of reassurance, felt like shards of glass now, cutting into the fragile hope youâd built. The waves surged closer, the cold spray dotting your skin. Your sobs mixed with the crashing tide, swallowed up by the vast, indifferent sea.
You hugged yourself tightly, your body shaking as the cold seeped deeper into your bones. Yet, you stayed there, rooted to the spot, as if the ocean could somehow wash away the ache inside you. But no wave could reach that far, no tide could touch the place where your heart ached. You wanted to scream, to shout at the world for the injustice of it all, but the air in your lungs wouldnât let you. You were too small for this world, too insignificant for him. You would never be the sea. You were just a small wave, lost in the expanse of the tide.
Rafayelâs POV
The door to the studio swung open, and Rafayel stepped inside, laughter trailing after him. âYou shouldâve seen the look on that shopkeeperâs face when I said weâd take both cakes,â he said, his voice warm and light. He turned to Lina, who chuckled softly as she followed him, holding one of the carefully boxed pastries. âHe probably thought we were insane.â
Rafayel kicked the door shut behind him, balancing his own box of confections, his grin still in place. âI canât wait to see my cutieâs face when she tries these. Sheâs going to love them.â
But the moment his gaze swept across the room, his laughter faltered and then stopped entirely.
The studio was transformed. Soft candlelight flickered, casting golden hues across the walls. Seashells glimmered like scattered pearls, carefully arranged along the edges of the space. Strands of delicate seaweed draped like garlands, their green silkiness catching the light. Trinkets, small but unmistakably meaningful, dotted the surfacesâeach one an ode to moments he had shared with you. The table was set with plates of untouched food, lovingly prepared, and the air held a faint, tantalizing aroma that now felt unbearably heavy.
He froze, the pastry box slipping slightly in his grip. His throat tightened as his eyes roved over every detail, taking in the love and care you had poured into the space. The decorations, the mementos, the effortâit was overwhelming.
âRafayel?â Linaâs voice broke through the silence. She stepped forward, her brows knitting in concern. âWhatâs wrong?â
âIâŠâ His voice cracked, and he set the box down on the nearest surface with trembling hands. âI fucked up,â he whispered, barely audible. His fingers grazed one of the seashells, its surface smooth and cool. He trailed his hand over a string of seaweed, the soft texture almost mocking him. âI fucked up bad.â
Linaâs concern deepened. âWhat are you talking about?â
Rafayel turned toward her, his expression stricken. âThe anniversary. Our anniversary. It slipped my mind.â His voice was a low, shaky whisper as he glanced back at the table, the untouched plates, the flickering candles. âShe did all of this⊠for me. For us.â
He called out your name, his voice echoing through the space. âAre you here? Cutie?â His steps quickened as he moved through the studio, searching. The bathroom. The bedroom. The small corner where you sometimes curled up to read. âAre you asleep?â he called, though he knew better. Each empty room was another blow to his gut.
Panic clawed at him as he returned to the main room, his gaze darting to the table again, the small trinkets, the soft glow of candles still burning. The room felt haunted, filled with the ghost of your hope and effort.
âShit,â he muttered under his breath, running a hand through his hair, gripping it tightly. He grabbed his phone and immediately dialed Thomas.
âThomas, did sheâdid she say anything to you? Did she mention where she might go?â Rafayelâs voice was taut with desperation.
Thomas hesitated. âShe called me earlier. She asked if you were still at the sale. Thatâs all she said.â
The weight of Thomasâs words slammed into Rafayel like a wave. Youâd called, searching for him, only to learn the truth he had tried to ignore. It had slipped his mind completely. He didnât know you were setting all of this up. For him. For the both of you.
âThanks,â Rafayel muttered, ending the call and immediately dialing your number. He paced the studio, his heart racing as the line rang once⊠twice⊠three timesâ
And then he heard it. The faint buzz of your phone, abandoned on the sofa near the window.
âShit!â Rafayel cursed, grabbing the device and staring at the darkened screen as if it could offer him answers. âShit, shit, shit!â
He collapsed onto the chair you had once sat in, his head in his hands. Where were you? His gaze drifted to the table again, the untouched dinner, the carefully arranged decorations.
How could he have been so blind? So careless? You had given him everything, and he⊠he had been too wrapped up in himself, too foolish to see what truly mattered.
Lina hesitated before taking a few careful steps toward Rafayel, watching his every move with growing concern. Sheâd never seen him like this before. His usual confident, almost cocky demeanor had vanished, leaving only raw distress in its place. He sat slumped in the chair, his phone clutched tightly in his hands, his chest rising and falling with each shaky breath.
"Rafayel..." she began softly, her voice gentle but concerned. "Whatâs going on? What happened?"
Her hand brushed against his shoulder in an attempt to comfort him, but the instant her fingers made contact with his skin, he flinched as though struck. His body jerked back, his eyes flashing with something wildâsomething dangerous. Â His eyes, usually a mischievous swirl of pink and blue, flared into a startling, unearthly bright blue before he clenched them shut, his jaw tightening.
âIâm sorry,â he muttered, his voice hoarse as he pulled away, his fists curling. âLina, Iâsorry. I didnât mean toââ He forced himself to inhale deeply, reigning in his emotions as the scales receded and his eyes returned to their usual hue. âIâm fine,â he lied, though the tension in his shoulders betrayed him. âI just... I need to find her.â
Linaâs hand hovered uncertainly before falling back to her side. âRafayel,â she began gently, âher phoneâs here. Her purse. Even her car keys. Where could she have gone?â
âI donât know,â he snapped, the sharpness in his voice born of self-directed frustration. âAnd thatâs whatâs driving me insane.â He ran a hand through his hair, tugging at the roots as if the pain could ground him. âSheâs out there somewhere, without her coat, without her phone... and itâs freezing tonight.â
Lina straightened, crossing her arms. âThen let me helpââ
âNo.â His interruption was immediate, his tone brooking no argument. He turned to her, his expression pained but resolute. âThis is my fault. I need to fix this myself.â
âButââ
âPlease, Lina,â he cut in, softer this time. âIf sheâs out there, youâll hear from me. Just⊠if you see her, let me know. But I have to do this alone.â
After a long, hesitant pause, Lina relented, her lips pressing into a thin line. âFine. But donât do anything reckless. Iâll keep my eyes open and let you know if I find anything.â
Rafayel nodded, murmuring his thanks before grabbing his coat and storming out into the night.
The cold air bit at his face as he ran through the streets, his breath forming short puffs in the frigid night. He clutched his phone tightly, the screen glowing as he swiped to a recent photo of you, showing it to every passerby he stopped.
âHave you seen her?â he asked a bewildered man on the corner. âThis woman? Pleaseâitâs urgent.â
The man shook his head, muttering an apology before hurrying off. Rafayel grit his teeth, suppressing the wave of panic threatening to consume him. Where are you?
The thought repeated like a drumbeat as he made his way to the beach. The icy wind off the water made him shiver, but he pressed forward, searching desperately. He called your neighbor, pacing along the shoreline as he waited for an answer.
The voice on the other end was soft, a little worried. âNo... the lights are off. The doorâs locked. I havenât seen her since this afternoon.â
His heart skipped a beat, the silence that followed pressing like a weight on his chest. Where were you? Where could you have gone? You were working so hard fore him, for the both of you since the afternoon and he wasnât even there to experience it with you together. He could imagine it, the smile on your face as you placed those shells, the excitement in your movements as you cooked his favorite food. His eyes darted to the horizon, a dark line of water stretching out before him, and his legs moved faster, pushing him toward the shore, toward the place where you sometimes went to escape.
The beach was empty when he arrived, the wind biting at his skin, the waves crashing softly against the sand. He scanned the shoreline, dread filling him as he searched. There was no sign of you, but his heart refused to let go of the hope that you might be here.
He walked for what felt like hours, the weight of the cold creeping into his bones as the night deepened. The autumn air turned chillier, the first hints of winter brushing against his skin. You hadnât taken your coat. You hadnât taken anything. What was he thinking? Youâd never leave without saying something. So why was heâ
His breath hitched as his gaze landed on something ahead. A small lump on the sand.
His heart stopped, the world narrowing down to that single, fragile form crumpled against the cold ground.
âNo!â he whispered, his voice raw with emotion. He ran towards you, his legs moving faster than they ever had before, fear propelling him forward. His feet barely touching the ground as he pushed forward, his every step frantic. He reached you within seconds, his pulse hammering in his ears. He knelt beside you, his hands trembling as he gently touched your shoulder.
âCutie?â he called, his voice cracking. His knees hit the sand as he reached you, and his heart twisted painfully at the sight. You were curled in on yourself, your arms hugging your knees, your face hidden. Tear tracks glistened on your cheeks, even in the dim moonlight, and your body trembled from the cold.
âShit,â Rafayel hissed, his voice barely a whisper as panic surged again. You were cold, so cold. Damp from the wet sand, your skin pale as if the very life had been drained from you. He pulled off his jacket, draping it around you as gently as he could, his hands still shaking.
Why didnât I see it? Why didnât I see how badly she needed me?
He slid his arms around you, his heart aching as he pulled you into his lap, cradling you as though you might break into a thousand pieces. He brushed the strands of hair from your face, his thumb gently caressing your cheek as he whispered your name over and over, praying that you would wake up. That you would hear him. âFuck,â he breathed, feeling a wave of guilt crash over him. âWhat did I do? What the hell did I doâŠâ
But he couldnât. Not now. Now, all he could do was hold you, his arms wrapping around you protectively as he rocked gently, trying to warm you, trying to make everything okay.
âIâm here, okay? Iâm here. Iâm so sorry, cutie.â he whispered, his voice breaking. His mind raced, but nothing could erase the hollow ache in his chest. The thought of losing you, of failing youâhe couldnât bear it. He wouldnât. âIâm sorry,â he choked out, the words tumbling from him like a confession he had never intended to make. âIâm so sorry. I fucked up. I messed this up, IâIâm here now.â
He clutched you tighter, trembling with the weight of his regret. The wind cut through the beach, but he barely noticed, too consumed by the sight of youâso still, so fragile, in his arms. His mind raced, scrambling for something, anything, to fix this
Your eyes fluttered open weakly, barely meeting his. You were too exhausted to respond, your body utterly spent.
âHey,â he whispered, his voice unsteady as he gently tucked his coat tighter around you. âIâve got you. Iâm so sorry.â His thumb brushed the tear-streaked curve of your cheek, his chest aching at the evidence of your heartbreak. âYou shouldnât be out here. Itâs too cold...not like this. Not alone,â Rafayel murmured, his voice thick with emotion. His hands trembled as he tried to warm you, his arms sheltering you from the relentless chill of the wind. âI shouldâve been there. I shouldâveââ He broke off, his throat tightening painfully. Words felt so useless now, but he couldnât stop them. He needed you to know. âIâm the biggest idiot in the world. I forgot something so important, something that shouldâve been at the center of my mind.â His arms slipped beneath you, lifting you effortlessly despite your protestsâif there were any.
Your lips moved faintly, but the sound was lost in the cold wind. He leaned closer, his ear near your mouth. âWhat is it? Iâm here. Please... say something.â
âI thought... maybe you'd care,â you whispered, your voice barely audible. The words struck him harder than any physical blow ever could. He felt the sting in his chest, his breath hitching as guilt twisted the knife deeper.
âI do care!â he exclaimed, his voice desperate. âMore than anything. I was just... I was so caught up in everything else, and IâI didnât realize how much you needed me. How much youâve always been there for me. I messed up, cutie. I know I did.â
You shivered against him, and he shifted to shield you better from the biting wind. âLet me take you home,â he pleaded, his voice softer now. âWeâll fix this. Iâll fix this. Iâll make it right, I swear.â
For a long moment, you didnât respond, and his heart hammered in his chest. Finally, you gave the faintest of nods, your head resting against his chest. You shivered in his arms, your eyes fluttering shut again, too drained to muster a response. Panic surged in Rafayel as he felt how cold your skin was against his. He shifted, standing with you carefully cradled in his arms, his coat wrapped tightly around you.
âHey, hey, stay with me,â he pleaded, his voice urgent but soft. âI need you to hold on, okay? Just a little longer. Letâs get you somewhere warm.â He pressed his cheek to your temple for a moment, as though the simple touch might reassure youâand himselfâthat you were still here with him.
Rafayel didnât waste a second. He scooped you up gently, careful not to jostle you. The warmth of his jacket wrapped around your frame and the steady rhythm of his heartbeat seemed to soothe some of the tension in your body. He murmured quiet reassurances as he carried you, his voice a constant presence in the cold, empty night. His normally cocky demeanor had shattered into shards of raw vulnerability, replaced by a frantic urgency to get you homeâhis home. Your breathing was shallow, your limbs slack in his hold, and every uneven step he took felt like walking a tightrope with everything he valued most precariously balanced in his grasp. He adjusted his hold, cradling you tighter against his chest. âLook, I know Iâm an idiot sometimes. Fine, most of the time,â he admitted, his words a jumble of nervous energy and shaky humor. âBut this isnât the time to prove me wrong, alright? Just hang on a little longer. Iâm taking you home.â
By the time you reached the studio, the candlelight had dimmed, but the room still held the warmth of the love you had poured into it. Rafayel carried you inside. By the time he reached the threshold of his room, his shirt clung to him, drenched from sweat and your tears. He nudged the door open with his shoulder, careful not to jostle you, and hurried inside.
The room was cold and dimly lit, the heater long dormant. He set you down on the bed, fumbling with the blankets to cocoon you in their warmth. Your body trembled, and his chest constricted as he watched you stir faintly before slipping deeper into unconsciousness.
âIâm sorry,â he whispered, barely audible at first, as if the walls themselves might condemn him. Then louder, more desperate, his voice cracking. âIâm so damn sorry. I was stupidâso, so stupid. I shouldâve seen this coming. Shouldâve kept you safe. Shouldâveââ He stopped himself, biting down hard on the inside of his cheek to stifle the sob building in his throat. His eyes flickered between his usual hues and that unearthly blue every now and then.
His hands hovered over your face, fingers trembling as he brushed damp strands of hair from your skin. âYouâre too good for me, you know that? Too good for someone who screws up as much as I do. But I promiseââ His voice broke, the words spilling out in a frenzied rush. âI promise Iâll make it up to you. Il love you, cutie. I love you so much.â And then, because even in his rawest moments he couldnât help himself, he added with a weak, self-deprecating chuckle, âI am lucky Iâm this charming, or I donât think youâd ever put up with me.â
He turned on the heater, pacing back and forth as he muttered under his breath, berating himself in every way he could think of, his brattiness peeking through as he cursed the broken world that had led to this moment. He glanced at you repeatedly, as if reassuring himself you hadnât vanished, that you hadnât slipped through his fingers.
When you stirred, your eyelids fluttering open, he froze mid-step. His usual confident smirk was gone, replaced by wide, guilt-stricken eyes. âYouâre awake,â he blurted, his voice filled with relief but tinged with apprehension. âI know I screwed up,â he admitted quietly, his lips brushing against your temple. âButâseriously, who let you do this to yourself, huh? Oh wait, thatâs me. Fantastic job, Rafayel. Bravo.â He huffed out a shaky laugh, but it didnât reach his eyes.
âIâm sorry,â he whispered, sitting at your bedside. The words spilled out before he could stop them, over and over again. âIâm so, so sorry. Thisâthis isnât how it was supposed to go. Youâre supposed to be mad at me, not like this. NotâŠâ His voice cracked, and he scrubbed a hand down his face, frustration bubbling beneath the surface.
Then, almost instinctively, the mask of bravado slipped back into place. âBut, hey, look at you, stealing my bed like itâs your right. I mean, sure, I offered, but still.â His smirk faltered, his voice softening. âYou better not make a habit of this, you know? Making me worry this much.â
You shifted, your eyelids fluttering completely open, and the sight of your weary gaze meeting his nearly unraveled him.
âRaf?â Your voice was weak, barely audible, but it was enough to snap him upright.
âHey, youâre awake!â He forced a grin, though it couldnât hide the guilt pooling in his eyes. âGood, because I was just about to start serenading you with an apology song. Donât ask for a refund⊠the lyrics are terrible.â
You tried to sit up, but he was on you in an instant, gently pressing you back down. âWhoa, whoa, no sudden moves, alright? Just... stay put for once. Let me handle it for a change.â
"Handle what?" you asked, your voice edged with exhaustion and confusion.
His grin wavered, giving way to something more honest, more afraid. âEverything. All of it. I... I screwed up, okay? Iâm the idiot who let you get like this, who didnât seeâwho didnât stopââ His words tangled, and he exhaled sharply. âIâm sorry. Iâm so damn sorry, and Iâll keep saying it until you believe me. Or, you know, until you tell me to shut up. Whichever comes first.â
Your lashes fluttered weakly again, and a barely audible sound escaped your lips. â...Rafayel...?â
His heart soared and broke all at once at the sound of your voice. âIâm here,â he said quickly, leaning closer so you could hear him clearly. âIâm right here. Iâve got you.â
Tears welled in his eyes as you looked up at him, your gaze heavy with exhaustion and something he couldnât quite nameâhurt, maybe, or disappointment. It cut him deeper than any blade ever could.
âIâm sorry,â he said again, his voice a choked whisper. âI know that doesnât fix this, but I swear, Iâll spend every moment making it up to you if you let me.â
For a moment, silence hung between you, broken only by the hum of the heater and the soft whistle of the wind outside. Finally, you whispered, your voice trembling, âI waited...â
âI know,â he whispered, his tears falling freely now. âYou shouldnât have had to. You deserve better than that, better than meâbut Iâm begging you, please give me another chance. Donât give up on me yet.â
Finally, your voice, though weak, broke the quiet. âYou forgot... something that meant so much to me.â
Rafayelâs throat tightened, but he nodded, accepting your words. âI know. And Iâll spend as long as it takes to make it up to you. Iâll show you how much you mean to me. I love you,â he whispered against your skin, the words soft but raw with sincerity. âMore than anything. More than I can even say. I donât deserve you, but⊠please, let me try. Let me make it up to you.â
âDonât leave me,â he repeated, his voice a breathless whisper, âNot like this.â His voice cracked on the last word, and for a moment, you could see the mask slipâjust for a second. Rafayel was scared. Scared of losing you. Scared of failing you. It was the one thing he had never let you see, the one thing he kept locked away in the deep recesses of his heart, but now, it was clear as day.
As you looked at him, something shifted between the two of youâan understanding, perhaps. You could see his desperation, the way he clung to the edges of his composure, trying to hide the vulnerability he never allowed anyone to witness.
I thought... I thought this was everything I could give. Everything I could be..." your own voice cracking.
He shook his head again, his grip never loosening. âYouâre so much more than all of this. Iâve been blind, cutie. And now I can see itâsee you.â He gently cupped your face in his hands, his thumbs brushing over your cheeks as if to erase every doubt that had taken root there. âIâm sorry. Iâm so sorry for making you feel invisible.â
You closed your eyes for a moment, the tears still staining your face, but the weight of his words was a strange kind of relief. He was here. He saw you now. The storm of emotions inside you hadnât dissipated, but his presence, the raw sincerity in his voice, made you feel something close to safety.
Rafayel kissed your forehead softly, the gentle pressure of his lips a tender promise. âIâm here, cutie. And Iâll do everything I can to make this right. You wonât feel invisible again.â
You nodded slowly, the tears still flowing, but there was a flicker of hope, however faint. "Just... don't forget again," you whispered.
âI wonât,â he promised, his voice firm, but his eyes were full of vulnerability. "I wonât. Never again."
You didnât respond immediately, your eyes closing as if you were too weary to respond. But when Rafayel reached for your hand, intertwining his fingers with yours, a faint squeeze answered him. It wasnât forgiveness, not yet, but it was enoughâa thread of hope that he clung to with everything he had. For now, you didnât pull away, and that was a start.
AN: reblogs, feedback and opinions are appreciated!
#love and deepspace#lads#lads rafayel#lnds rafayel#rafayel love and deepspace#zayne x reader#rafayel x reader#lads drabble#l&ds rafayel#l&ds#rafayel#oneshotswithlina#rafayel l&ds#love and deepspace rafayel#rafayel x you#rafayel oneshot#rafayel fluff#rafayel fanfic#reader x rafayel#rafayel angst#rafayel x non mc#lads angst#love and deepspace angst#lnds angst#homura#qi yu#qi yu love and deepspace#qi yu x reader
2K notes
·
View notes